Selected quad for the lemma: word_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
word_n prove_v scripture_n tradition_n 5,001 5 9.5879 5 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A27069 Which is the true church? the whole Christian world, as headed only by Christ ... or, the Pope of Rome and his subjects as such? : in three parts ... / by Richard Baxter ... Baxter, Richard, 1615-1691. 1679 (1679) Wing B1453; ESTC R1003 229,673 156

There are 28 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

part_n of_o the_o church_n i_o next_o tell_v he_o that_o the_o jesuit_n turnbull_n against_o rob._n baronius_n maintain_v that_o revelation_n 6._o be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o formal_a object_n of_o faith_n and_o therefore_o to_o deny_v it_o be_v not_o to_o deny_v the_o formal_a object_n 2._o and_o that_o forma_fw-la that_fw-mi nomen_fw-la and_o he_o be_v no_o heretic_n that_o be_v none_o formal_o to_o the_o latter_a he_o give_v no_o answer_n and_o to_o the_o first_o as_o bad_a as_o none_o viz._n that_o the_o heretic_n deny_v also_o the_o material_a object_n and_o what_o be_v that_o to_o the_o case_n in_o hand_n and_o that_o which_o he_o be_v oblige_v by_o sufficient_a reason_n to_o believe_v to_o be_v reveal_v of_o god_n and_o therefore_o virtual_o deny_v god_n to_o be_v true_a ans._n but_o i_o again_o reply_n 1._o virtual_a be_v not_o actual_a 2._o it_o be_v no_o virtual_a denial_n that_o god_n be_v true_a but_o only_o that_o the_o proposer_n be_v true_a to_o be_v oblige_v to_o believe_v a_o thing_n to_o be_v god_n word_n only_o prove_v that_o i_o break_v that_o obligation_n if_o i_o believe_v it_o not_o to_o be_v his_o word_n but_o not_o at_o all_o that_o i_o believe_v god_n to_o be_v a_o liar_n who_o word_n i_o believe_v it_o not_o to_o be_v again_o this_o make_v all_o christian_n to_o be_v heretic_n past_a dispute_n for_o all_o christian_n receive_v not_o something_o or_o other_o small_a or_o great_a which_o they_o be_v oblige_v to_o belie●…e_v to_o be_v god_n word_n do_v you_o err_v in_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v reveal_v by_o scripture_n or_o tradition_n or_o not_o if_o you_o say_v no_o and_o so_o that_o your_o understanding_n have_v no_o sin_n you_o deceive_v yourself_o and_o the_o truth_n be_v not_o in_o you_o if_o yea_o then_o be_v you_o not_o oblige_v to_o believe_v the_o contrary_a to_o be_v god_n word_n if_o not_o oblige_v than_o your_o error_n be_v no_o sin_n so_o that_o you_o make_v every_o sinful_a error_n to_o be_v heresy_n and_o proud_o deny_v that_o you_o have_v any_o sinful_a error_n lest_o you_o shall_v be_v a_o heretic_n i_o add_v that_o their_o church_n be_v constitute_v of_o man_n that_o sinful_o neglect_v some_o point_n of_o truth_n or_o other_o sufficient_o propose_v ergo_fw-la be_v it_o constitute_v of_o heretic_n 7._o to_o this_o he_o answer_v that_o whatever_o their_o neglect_n be_v to_o know_v what_o be_v propound_v yet_o so_o long_o as_o they_o believe_v explicit_o what_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v so_o believe_v necessitate_v medii_fw-la and_o implicit_o the_o rest_n they_o can_v be_v no_o hereitck_n for_o it_o be_v not_o the_o ignorance_n though_o culpable_a but_o contradiction_n to_o what_o be_v know_v damn_v to_o they_o to_o be_v propound_v by_o those_o that_o have_v power_n to_o oblige_v they_o as_o be_v their_o lawful_a superior_n which_o make_v a_o heretic_n r._n b._n 1._o but_o still_o you_o agree_v not_o nor_o tell_v we_o what_o be_v explicit_o to_o be_v believe_v necessary_o 2._o by_o this_o we_o be_v all_o absolve_v from_o heresy_n for_o we_o believe_v all_o explicitly_a that_o be_v necssary_a necessitate_v medii_fw-la and_o all_o the_o rest_n implicit_o by_o a_o double_a implicit_a faith_n 1._o in_o god_n and_o our_o redeemer_n 2._o in_o the_o inspire_a apostle_n and_o prophet_n we_o believe_v all_o to_o be_v true_a which_o god_n have_v reveal_v and_o which_o his_o apostle_n have_v deliver_v as_o god_n word_n 3._o yea_o and_o all_o that_o we_o know_v to_o be_v propound_v by_o any_o oblige_a superior_n for_o we_o know_v not_o the_o pope_n nor_o your_o contradictory_n council_n to_o be_v such_o my_o next_o qu._n 2._o be_v what_o mean_v you_o by_o sufficient_a proposal_n 8._o w._n i._n such_o as_o be_v sufficient_a among_o man_n in_o humanis_fw-la to_o oblige_v one_o to_o take_v notice_n that_o a_o king_n have_v exact_v such_o and_o such_o law_n etc._n etc._n that_o be_v a_o public_a testimony_n that_o such_o thing_n be_v reveal_v by_o the_o infallible_a authority_n of_o those_o who_o be_v the_o high_a tribunal_n of_o god_n church_n or_o by_o notorious_a and_o universal_a tr●…dition_n r._n b._n 1._o here_o the_o reader_n may_v see_v that_o he_o take_v sufficiency_n respective_o to_o the_o promulgator_n viz._n as_o much_o as_o he_o be_v oblige_v to_o do_v for_o a_o king_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o publish_v his_o law_n in_o every_o parish_n or_o county_n but_o only_o to_o make_v such_o a_o publication_n of_o they_o in_o the_o chief_a place_n of_o his_o kingdom_n as_o that_o man_n may_v take_v notice_n of_o they_o king_n send_v not_o schoolmaster_n to_o teach_v every_o man_n how_o to_o prove_v that_o his_o law_n be_v not_o counterfeit_v and_o what_o they_o be_v and_o what_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o they_o for_o the_o enact_v of_o they_o be_v a_o late_a matter_n of_o fact_n and_o easy_o notify_v as_o near_o unto_o they_o and_o no_o other_o knowledge_n or_o belief_n of_o they_o be_v require_v but_o such_o as_o be_v necessary_a to_o that_o part_n of_o the_o obedience_n of_o they_o which_o belong_v to_o every_o man_n in_o his_o place_n this_o be_v not_o necessary_a and_o if_o such_o a_o publication_n of_o god_n law_n be_v sufficient_a million_o that_o never_o hear_v a_o word_n of_o the_o bible_n or_o what_o christ_n be_v have_v such_o a_o sufficient_a publication_n for_o the_o gospel_n be_v publish_v in_o many_o part_n of_o the_o world_n and_o perhaps_o in_o many_o place_n of_o the_o kingdom_n where_o they_o dwell_v though_o they_o never_o hear_v it_o 2._o but_o when_o man_n have_v the_o public_a testimony_n that_o such_o statute_n be_v make_v and_o such_o a_o book_n send_v from_o god_n this_o do_v not_o acquaint_v man_n what_o those_o statutesor_n that_o book_n contain_v sothat_o by_o this_o rule_n it_o shall_v be_v sufficient_a to_o know_v that_o god_n make_v the_o bible_n without_o know_v what_o be_v in_o it_o or_o else_o he_o that_o be_v but_o tell_v that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o book_n be_v bind_v by_o that_o much_o to_o know_v all_o that_o be_v in_o it_o 3._o but_o note_v the_o popish_a difficulty_n of_o faith_n w._n i._n tell_v we_o after_o the_o rest_n that_o we_o must_v know_v these_o thing_n reveal_v by_o the_o infallible_a authority_n of_o those_o who_o be_v the_o high_a tribunal_n of_o god_n church_n etc._n etc._n and_o be_v it_o possible_a for_o one_o that_o know_v nothing_o of_o christ_n or_o the_o scripture_n or_o that_o christ_n have_v a_o church_n to_o know_v yet_o 1._o that_o he_o have_v a_o church_n 2._o and_o that_o he_o have_v authorize_v some_o man_n to_o be_v the_o high_a tribunal_n to_o judge_n that_o church_n through_o all_o the_o world_n and_o 3._o that_o he_o have_v particular_o authorize_v they_o to_o judge_n which_o be_v and_o be_v not_o his_o revelation_n 4._o and_o to_o know_v who_o be_v the_o man_n that_o be_v this_o high_a tribunal_n to_o all_o the_o world_n viz._n for_o those_o of_o abassia_n that_o have_v not_o so_o much_o history_n as_o to_o tell_v they_o that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o city_n as_o rome_n or_o such_o a_o man_n as_o the_o pope_n in_o the_o world_n till_o oviedo_n be_v send_v who_o tell_v it_o but_o to_o few_o can_v yet_o know_v that_o this_o pope_n and_o his_o council_n be_v their_o judge_n and_o from_o they_o they_o must_v receive_v the_o gospel_n 5._o and_o to_o know_v that_o this_o universal_a tribunal_n be_v infallible_a before_o they_o believe_v in_o christ_n himself_o who_o be_v suppose_v to_o give_v they_o their_o infallibility_n alas_o must_v every_o poor_a infidel_n know_v all_o this_o before_o he_o can_v believe_v in_o christ_n when_o we_o that_o live_v among_o they_o and_o read_v their_o law_n and_o doctrine_n can_v easy_o believe_v the_o infallibility_n of_o those_o pope_n who_o by_o general_a council_n be_v charge_v not_o only_o with_o murder_n adultery_n simony_n perjury_n etc._n etc._n but_o with_o heresy_n also_o or_o infidelity_n nor_o the_o infallibility_n of_o those_o general_a council_n who_o be_v accuse_v by_o pope_n and_o by_o other_o council_n of_o error_n heresy_n or_o schism_n 4._o but_o he_o add_v another_o way_n or_o by_o notorious_a and_o universal_a tradition_n and_o 1._o if_o this_o will_v 9_o serve_v than_o i_o hope_v we_o may_v have_v true_a faith_n that_o believe_v no_o humane_a infallible_a tribunal_n over_o all_o the_o world_n much_o less_o that_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o council_n be_v such_o a_o tribunal_n for_o we_o have_v notorious_a universal_a tradition_n deliver_v we_o all_o our_o religion_n 2._o but_o yet_o these_o be_v hard_a term_n for_o every_o poor_a heathen_a to_o come_v to_o christ_n by_o alas_o how_o shall_v the_o million_o of_o people_n through_o the_o world_n who_o know_v nothing_o that_o be_v many_o day_n journey_n from_o their_o house_n know_v
the_o cause_n in_o name_v integral_n for_o those_o be_v not_o accident_n ans._n 1._o my_o affirm_v that_o the_o papacy_n be_v as_o much_o a_o accident_n as_o a_o leprosy_n be_v to_o a_o man_n do_v not_o make_v i_o forget_v that_o i_o be_v confute_v his_o assertion_n that_o all_o be_v essential_a to_o the_o church_n which_o be_v institute_v to_o be_v for_o ever_o or_o indeed_o which_o have_v be_v ever_o in_o it_o for_o that_o be_v his_o say_n and_o though_o integral_n be_v not_o accident_n yet_o they_o be_v not_o essential_o be_v this_o hard_a to_o see_v and_o 2._o by_o his_o now_o put_v in_o the_o word_n institute_v he_o will_v make_v the_o reader_n think_v that_o i_o have_v grant_v that_o the_o papacy_n be_v institute_v by_o christ._n 2._o he_o say_v that_o nothing_o can_v be_v a_o accident_n to_o the_o church_n which_o christ_n have_v institute_v to_o be_v perpetual_o in_o the_o church_n and_o consequent_o the_o church_n hold_v any_o thing_n to_o be_v so_o if_o true_a be_v essential_a to_o the_o subsistence_n of_o the_o church_n if_o false_a be_v essential_o destructive_a of_o the_o church_n so_o that_o whether_o true_a or_o false_a it_o will_v never_o be_v accidental_a to_o the_o church_n ans._n 1._o what_o work_n will_v interest_n and_o error_n make_v if_o so_o than_o every_o error_n and_o every_o sin_n of_o the_o church_n be_v essential_o destructive_a of_o the_o church_n for_o christ_n have_v institute_v that_o the_o church_n shall_v perpetual_o hold_v and_o teach_v the_o truth_n only_o and_o obey_v all_o his_o command_n without_o sin_v if_o he_o say_v that_o the_o church_n never_o have_v nor_o have_v sin_n or_o error_n i_o answer_v 1._o if_o a_o essential_a part_n of_o the_o church_n have_v have_v sin_n and_o error_n than_o so_o have_v the_o church_n have_v but_o a_o essential_a part_n in_o their_o account_n that_o be_v their_o suppose_a head_n have_v have_v sin_n and_o error_n to_o pass_v by_o peter_n deny_v christ_n dissuade_v he_o from_o suffer_v till_o he_o hear_v get_v behind_o i_o satan_n mat._n 16._o his_o dissemble_a gal._n 2._o sure_a marcellinus_n sinful_o offer_v incense_n to_o a_o idol_n and_o honorius_n and_o tiberius_n sin_v and_o it_o be_v some_o sin_n in_o those_o pope_n that_o defile_v wife_n and_o maid_n at_o the_o apostolic_a door_n and_o that_o be_v whoremonger_n and_o come_v in_o by_o whore_n and_o poison_n and_o that_o be_v condemn_v as_o simonist_n heretic_n incarnate_a devil_n perjure_a murderer_n etc._n etc._n and_o that_o by_o council_n 2._o if_o all_o the_o particular_a member_n of_o the_o church_n have_v some_o error_n or_o sin_n than_o so_o have_v the_o church_n but_o all_o the_o particular_a member_n have_v etc._n etc._n if_o any_o man_n say_v that_o he_o have_v no_o sin_n he_o be_v a_o liar_n and_o the_o truth_n be_v not_o in_o he_o 1._o joh._n 1._o and_o in_o many_o thing_n we_o offend_v all_o jam._n 3._o 2._o etc._n etc._n 2._o why_o then_o do_v he_o accuse_v we_o for_o separate_v from_o rome_n if_o it_o be_v as_o certain_o unchurch_v as_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o they_o have_v have_v sin_n and_o error_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o pope_n be_v such_o as_o aforesaid_a or_o the_o council_n sin_v that_o condemn_v they_o as_o such_o and_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o either_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n basil_n and_o pisa_n err_v and_o sin_v which_o decree_v that_o council_n be_v above_o the_o pope_n and_o may_v condemn_v and_o depose_v he_o and_o that_o this_o be_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la and_o the_o contrary_a heresy_n or_o else_o the_o council_n of_o lateran_n and_o florence_n err_v and_o sin_v that_o say_v the_o contrary_n and_o so_o of_o other_o instance_n 3._o but_o as_o i_o have_v prove_v the_o antecedent_n of_o his_o argument_n false_a already_o so_o his_o consequence_n that_o the_o church_n hold_v any_o thing_n to_o be_v institute_v for_o perpetuity_n be_v essential_a and_o the_o deny_v destructive_a of_o the_o essence_n will_v not_o follow_v but_o on_o two_o supposition_n 1._o that_o such_o institution_n be_v not_o only_a no_o accident_n but_o no_o integral_n 2._o that_o every_o command_v truth_n be_v essential_a which_o be_v both_o false_a for_o else_o the_o institution_n may_v be_v essential_a and_o yet_o not_o the_o believe_a it_o such_o be_v essential_a and_o he_o confess_v that_o such_o belief_n be_v not_o essential_a to_o every_o member_n nor_o can_v he_o tell_v to_o how_o many_o nor_o to_o who_o add_v esse_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la if_o he_o say_v to_z as_o many_o as_o have_v a_o sufficient_a proposal_n 1._o then_o if_o none_o have_v a_o sufficient_a proposal_n it_o will_v cease_v to_o be_v essential_a to_o the_o church_n 2._o then_o if_o any_o one_o sin_n be_v commit_v by_o the_o church_n against_o a_o sufficient_a proposal_n the_o church_n be_v nullify_v if_o he_o say_v it_o be_v not_o know_v how_o many_o must_v believe_v it_o ad_fw-la esse_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la than_o no_o man_n can_v know_v whether_o the_o church_n be_v nullify_v or_o not_o he_o say_v pag._n 6●…_n so_o the_o acknowledgement_n of_o it_o by_o all_o those_o to_o who_o it_o be_v sufficient_o propound_v 11._o be_v necessary_a to_o make_v they_o part_n of_o the_o true_a church_n and_o the_o denial_n of_o it_o when_o so_o propound_v hinder_v they_o from_o be_v part_n ans._n 1._o still_o this_o say_v nothing_o to_o the_o question_n how_o far_o and_o in_o who_o it_o be_v essential_a to_o the_o church_n 2._o and_o this_o unchurch_v every_o person_n that_o err_v and_o sin_v against_o any_o one_o word_n of_o scripture_n after_o a_o sufficient_a proposal_n yet_o this_o same_o man_n say_v pag._n 36._o of_o his_o explication_n whatsoever_o their_o neglect_n be_v to_o know_v what_o be_v propound_v yet_o so_o long_o as_o they_o believe_v explicit_o what_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v necessitate_v medii_fw-la and_o implicit_o the_o rest_n they_o can_v be_v no_o heretic_n for_o it_o be_v not_o the_o ignorance_n though_o culpable_a etc._n etc._n and_o do_v the_o wilful_o ignorant_a acknowledge_v it_o reconcile_v these_o if_o you_o can_v 2._o this_o unchurch_v your_o whole_a church_n for_o it_o be_v sufficient_o propose_v even_o in_o express_a word_n in_o the_o scripture_n that_o there_o be_v bread_n in_o the_o eucharist_n after_o consecration_n thrice_o together_o in_o 1_o cor._n 11._o and_o that_o the_o church_n shall_v communicate_v with_o the_o cup_n this_o do_v in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o even_o to_o show_v the_o lord_n death_n till_o he_o come_v and_o that_o we_o shall_v not_o make_v to_o ourselves_o any_o grave_a image_n nor_o bow_v down_o to_o it_o nor_o worship_n it_o and_o that_o we_o shall_v pray_v public_o in_o a_o know_a tongue_n and_o that_o bishop_n shall_v not_o lord_n it_o over_o the_o flock_n etc._n etc._n and_o you_o err_v and_o sin_n after_o this_o sufficient_a proposal_n pag._n 36._o i_o have_v give_v several_a instance_n of_o the_o iberian_o indian_n american_n the_o primitive_a christian_n and_o their_o own_o convert_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o belief_n of_o and_o subjection_n to_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o necessary_a to_o christianity_n or_o salvation_n to_o which_o his_o answer_n be_v very_o remarkable_a viz._n i_o never_o say_v that_o all_o particular_a person_n or_o community_n be_v oblige_v to_o have_v a_o express_a belief_n or_o acknowledgement_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n supremacy_n that_o be_v necessary_a to_o all_o neither_o necessitate_v medii_fw-la nor_o praecepti_fw-la it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o they_o believe_v it_o implicit_o in_o subject_v themselves_o to_o all_o those_o who_o christ_n have_v institute_v to_o be_v their_o lawful_a pastor_n and_o when_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v sufficient_o propose_v to_o they_o to_o be_v the_o supreme_a visible_a pastor_n of_o those_o pastor_n upon_o earth_n that_o then_o they_o obstinate_o reject_v not_o his_o authority_n ans._n there_o be_v some_o moderation_n in_o this_o though_o it_o utter_o overthrow_v their_o cause_n 1._o this_o full_o prove_v that_o the_o poor_a abassine_n armenian_n and_o such_o other_o for_o all_o the_o popish_a accusation_n of_o they_o be_v neither_o heretic_n nor_o schismatic_n for_o not_o acknowledge_v the_o pope_n who_o supremacy_n have_v not_o be_v sufficient_o propose_v to_o they_o and_o so_o that_o the_o church_n be_v great_a than_o the_o pope_n kingdom_n 2._o this_o make_v out_o a_o receive_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n to_o be_v no_o more_o necessary_a than_o the_o receive_n of_o every_o word_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n or_o tradition_n no●…_n than_o the_o receive_n e._n g._n of_o the_o cup_n in_o the_o lord_n supper_n for_o all_o be_v essential_o necessary_a say_v they_o when_o sufficient_o propound_v 3._o this_o undeceive_v we_o that_o think_v their_o doctrine_n have_v be_v that_o the_o scripture_n and_o christianity_n must_v necessary_o be_v
all_o man_n that_o believe_v a_o god_n believe_v he_o to_o be_v true_a and_o no_o liar_n and_o so_o w._n i._o make_v none_o but_o atheist_n to_o be_v heretic_n to_o this_o he_o answer_v w._n j._n there_o be_v a_o twofold_a deny_v of_o god_n one_o formal_a and_o direct_a the_o other_o virtual_a and_o indirect_a atheist_n be_v guilty_a of_o the_o first_o heretic_n of_o the_o second_o this_o i_o oblige_v myself_o to_o prove_v whosoever_o obstinate_o contradict_v any_o truth_n reveal_v from_o god_n as_o all_o heretic_n do_v some_o or_o other_o of_o they_o they_o sinful_o and_o wilful_o affirm_v that_o what_o god_n have_v reveal_v be_v not_o true_a and_o consequent_o that_o god_n be_v a_o liar_n and_o by_o that_o destroy_v as_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lie_v the_o very_a essence_n of_o god_n r._n b._n here_o be_v little_a but_o novelty_n and_o deceit_n 1._o it_o be_v deceit_n to_o call_v that_o a_o deny_v of_o god_n in_o a_o controversy_n of_o such_o moment_n whatever_o you_o may_v do_v rhetorical_o in_o a_o oration_n which_o you_o confess_v yourself_o be_v not_o a_o deny_v he_o for_o you_o say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o formal_a but_o a_o virtual_a deny_v he_o and_o that_o be_v true_o no_o actual_a deny_v he_o for_o forma_fw-la that_fw-mi nomen_fw-la &_o esse_fw-la boy_n will_v deride_v you_o if_o you_o deny_v this_o if_o you_o object_v paul_n word_n tit._n 1._o they_o confess_v he_o in_o word_n but_o in_o their_o work_n they_o deny_v he_o i_o answer_v that_o they_o deny_v he_o formal_o by_o their_o work_n for_o those_o work_v signify_v that_o their_o mind_n do_v not_o formal_o believe_v god_n to_o be_v god_n indeed_o according_a to_o his_o essentiality_n 2._o it_o be_v novelty_n and_o deceit_n to_o affirm_v and_o stout_o undertake_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o deny_v of_o one_o of_o the_o proposition_n from_o which_o the_o conclusion_n must_v arise_v be_v virtual_o a_o deny_v of_o both_o e._n g._n whatever_o be_v god_n word_n be_v true_a but_o the_o story_n of_o bell_n and_o the_o dragon_n and_o of_o the_o angel_n in_o tobit_n say_v he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o ananias_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o naphthali_n and_o that_o the_o entrails_n of_o a_o fish_n will_v drive_v away_o all_o devil_n that_o they_o shall_v never_o return_v etc._n etc._n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n may_v not_o a_o man_n firm_o believe_v the_o major_n that_o take_v the_o minor_a for_o a_o lie_n and_o suppose_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n say_v that_o i_o be_o obstinate_a my_o reason_n be_v 1._o angel_n be_v not_o bear_v of_o man_n 2._o christ_n say_v this_o kind_n go_v not_o out_o but_o by_o fast_v and_o prayer_n etc._n etc._n so_o that_o i_o must_v take_v christ_n for_o a_o liar_n if_o i_o take_v not_o tobit_n to_o be_v false_a may_v not_o i_o be_v obstinate_a in_o this_o and_o yet_o not_o deny_v that_o all_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v true_a if_o the_o manichee_n tell_v i_o that_o the_o gospel_n of_o nicodemus_n and_o of_o saint_n thomas_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o papist_n that_o the_o apostolical_a canon_n and_o constitution_n and_o the_o itinerary_n of_o peter_n be_v write_v by_o clemens_n be_v obstinate_a unbelief_n of_o this_o a_o deny_v that_o god_n be_v true_a your_o sufficient_a proposal_n be_v that_o of_o your_o church_n a_o general_n council_n be_v your_o high_a proposer_n with_o the_o pope_n i_o find_v that_o the_o council_n at_o constance_n and_o basil_n and_o pisa_n say_v one_o thing_n and_o that_o at_o lateran_n and_o florence_n say_v the_o contrary_a and_o i_o obstinate_o refuse_v to_o believe_v they_o both_o may_v i_o not_o yet_o firm_o believe_v that_o god_n be_v true_a you_o be_v not_o god_n and_o very_o i_o have_v more_o reason_n to_o suspect_v you_o than_o god_n the_o countryman_n that_o never_o read_v council_n nor_o travel_v to_o rome_n know_v nothing_o of_o your_o matter_n but_o by_o his_o parish-priest_n if_o he_o know_v this_o priest_n to_o be_v a_o common_a whoremonger_n and_o liar_n may_v he_o not_o suspect_v he_o without_o deny_v god_n but_o if_o you_o can_v prove_v what_o you_o undertake_v it_o be_v the_o sad_a with_o you_o that_o can_v triumph_v in_o sentence_v yourselves_o as_o heretic_n to_o hell_n e._n g._n whatever_o be_v god_n word_n be_v true_a but_o it_o be_v god_n word_n that_o the_o lord_n supper_n shall_v be_v administer_v in_o both_o kind_n bread_n and_o wine_n this_o do_v in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o and_o that_o it_o be_v bread_n after_o the_o consecration_n 1_o cor._n 11._o and_o that_o it_o be_v better_a to_o pray_v in_o a_o know_a tongue_n than_o in_o a_o unknown_a 1_o cor._n 14._o and_o that_o they_o know_v not_o what_o manner_n of_o spirit_n they_o be_v of_o who_o will_v have_v the_o resister_n of_o christ_n apostle_n and_o of_o christ_n himself_o consume_v with_o fire_n and_o that_o the_o clergy_n must_v not_o lord_n it_o over_o god_n heritage_n but_o as_o servant_n to_o all_o rule_v they_o willing_o and_o not_o by_o constraint_n etc._n etc._n ergo_fw-la this_o be_v all_o true_a and_o whoever_o deny_v this_o truth_n of_o god_n indirect_o deny_v god_n essence_n and_o make_v he_o a_o liar_n but_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n deny_v all_o these_o do_v it_o follow_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v heretic_n blasphemer_n and_o liar_n and_o all_o this_o be_v sufficient_o reveal_v for_o it_o be_v plain_o write_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 3._o note_v reader_n that_o such_o a_o contradiction_n of_o any_o truth_n reveal_v by_o god_n do_v make_v a_o man_n a_o heretic_n o_o then_o what_o abundance_n of_o heretic_n be_v in_o the_o world_n what_o one_o man_n can_v say_v that_o he_o do_v not_o contradict_v some_o truth_n reveal_v by_o god_n by_o nature_n or_o scripture_n or_o both_o every_o man_n mind_n and_o will_n be_v deprave_v and_o be_v so_o have_v some_o degree_n of_o obstinacy_n in_o resist_v some_o truth_n of_o god_n and_o so_o all_o man_n in_o the_o world_n as_o well_o as_o the_o obstinate_o erroneous_a papist_n be_v heretic_n not_o only_a papist_n that_o will_v believe_v neither_o the_o scripture_n tradition_n reason_n nor_o all_o man_n sense_n that_o there_o be_v bread_n after_o consecration_n but_o any_o one_o that_o do_v not_o believe_v who_o be_v the_o father_n of_o arphaxad_n e._n g._n or_o any_o point_n of_o genealogy_n or_o of_o chronology_n or_o differ_v number_n in_o king_n and_o chronicle_n ezra_n and_o nehemiah_n mat._n 1._o and_o luk._n 3_o etc._n etc._n or_o that_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o every_o word_n in_o judith_n tobit_n etc._n etc._n be_v god_n word_n be_v all_o heretic_n and_o denier_n of_o god_n essence_n nor_o do_v he_o except_v any_o age_n of_o person_n so_o that_o if_o a_o schoolboy_n shall_v but_o obstinate_o deny_v to_o believe_v his_o master_n about_o a_o tradition_n or_o a_o scripture-name_n or_o number_n he_o be_v a_o heretic_n the_o council_n of_o basil_n reveal_v the_o sinless_a conception_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n and_o yet_o the_o papist_n that_o deny_v it_o be_v not_o account_v heretic_n and_o what_o show_n be_v there_o of_o this_o consequence_n the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n 2._o of_o arminum_fw-la of_o lateran_n of_o nice_a 2_o of_o florence_n of_o constance_n basil_n trent_n may_v lie_v ergo_fw-la god_n be_v a_o liar_n heretic_n shall_v be_v soft_a in_o define_v heresy_n i_o next_o instance_a what_o if_o a_o man_n deny_v that_o there_o be_v a_o heaven_n hell_n resurrection_n and_o also_o the_o 5._o revelation_n of_o these_o and_o yet_o deny_v not_o the_o veracity_n of_o god_n no_o nor_o of_o the_o church_n be_v this_o no_o heretic_n he_o answer_v no_o if_o not_o sufficient_o propound_v to_o he_o as_o reveal_v from_o god_n but_o that_o proposition_n must_v be_v make_v by_o the_o church_n and_o as_o long_o as_o he_o believe_v the_o infallible_a veracity_n of_o the_o church_n propound_v he_o can_v disbelieve_v what_o it_o propound_v sufficient_o etc._n etc._n r._n b._n 1._o but_o a_o man_n that_o do_v not_o believe_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n may_v believe_v god_n veracity_n and_o yet_o be_v a_o heretic_n 2._o a_o papist_n that_o hold_v your_o church_n infallible_a may_v disbelieve_v what_o general_a council_n deliver_v as_o de_fw-fr fide_fw-la for_o so_o you_o do_v so_o that_o this_o word_n sufficient_a be_v as_o unintelligible_a among_o yourselves_o as_o mere_a nonsense_n for_o even_o general_a council_n proposal_n be_v not_o account_v sufficient_a when_o you_o be_v against_o they_o and_o yet_o every_o priest_n be_v when_o your_o turn_n require_v it_o 3._o and_o many_o a_o man_n may_v take_v the_o church_n proposal_n to_o be_v certain_a and_o yet_o think_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v but_o a_o erroneous_a faction_n and_o scarce_o a_o corrupt_a three_o
virgin_n mary_n and_o yet_o you_o take_v it_o for_o a_o controversy_n etc._n etc._n be_v these_o as_o sufficient_o propose_v as_o that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n or_o christ_n 3._o when_o petavius_n cit_v the_o word_n of_o most_o of_o the_o doctor_n or_o father_n that_o write_v before_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o of_o eusebius_n himself_o that_o be_v of_o the_o council_n and_o subscribe_v it_o as_o be_v for_o arrianisme_n or_o dangerous_o favour_v it_o do_v all_o these_o father_n think_v that_o the_o proposal_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v as_o sufficient_a as_o of_o a_o god_n or_o christ._n §_o 15._o he_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o clear_v his_o argument_n by_o two_o delude_a instance_n which_o suppose_v a_o equality_n in_o the_o revelation_n but_o he_o that_o know_v not_o 1_o that_o it_o be_v long_o before_o all_o the_o canonical_a book_n be_v equal_o know_v to_o be_v god_n word_n 2._o and_o that_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o equal_o certain_a what_o council_n be_v true_a and_o what_o tradition_n 3._o and_o that_o there_o be_v great_a difference_n between_o one_o text_n of_o scripture_n and_o another_o in_o intelligible_a place_n else_o why_o do_v their_o exposition_n so_o disagree_v yea_o of_o council_n too_o 4._o and_o that_o the_o heretic_n have_v still_o plead_v scripture_n and_o tradition_n and_o council_n as_o well_o as_o the_o orthodox_n as_o the_o eutychian_o etc._n etc._n do_v the_o council_n of_o nice_a all_o equal_o profess_v to_o believe_v scripture_n tradition_n and_o true_a council_n but_o not_o equal_o understand_v they_o i_o say_v he_o that_o know_v not_o all_o this_o know_v not_o the_o matter_n of_o fact_n which_o shall_v be_v know_v in_o this_o dispute_n but_o how_o he_o will_v excuse_v the_o papist_n from_o heresy_n by_o his_o reason_v i_o know_v not_o e._n g._n christ_n institute_v his_o supper_n say_v equal_o 1._o this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o this_o be_v the_o new_a testament_n 2._o and_o equal_o say_v take_v eat_v and_o drink_v this_o the_o papist_n 1._o do_v not_o believe_v that_o literal_o this_o cup_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n though_o equal_o say_v 2._o nor_o do_v they_o believe_v that_o they_o must_v drink_v of_o it_o though_o equal_o command_v ergo_fw-la by_o w._n i_n argue_n the_o papist_n believe_v not_o that_o the_o bread_n be_v literal_o christ_n body_n or_o that_o it_o must_v be_v eat_v because_o of_o christ_n truth_n or_o authority_n that_o speak_v it_o else_o they_o will_v have_v believe_v both_o §_o 16._o he_o add_v a_o supposition_n like_o the_o rest_n that_o a_o calvinist_n be_v assure_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o the_o antichrist_n by_o the_o same_o authority_n which_o he_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v the_o sufficient_a proposer_n of_o the_o article_n of_o his_o faith_n and_o yet_o here_o may_v lie_v one_o of_o his_o usual_a equivocation_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o author_n and_o prime_a revealer_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v one_o and_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o prime_n instrumental_a revealer_n be_v another_o the_o first_o be_v god_n the_o second_o be_v the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n tell_v we_o where_o either_o of_o these_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n it_o not_o antichrist_n but_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o distant_a messenger_n and_o teacher_n be_v of_o a_o three_o rank_n a_o drunken_a or_o fornicate_a priest_n may_v be_v such_o a_o messenger_n or_o teacher_n and_o may_v give_v a_o infidel_n those_o reason_n of_o the_o faith_n which_o by_o god_n blessing_n may_v bring_v he_o to_o believe_v and_o it_o be_v possible_a such_o a_o priest_n and_o a_o synod_n of_o such_o may_v say_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o antichrist_n and_o another_o synod_n may_v say_v he_o be_v §_o 17._o i_o come_v next_o to_o answer_v a_o question_n of_o his_o own_o whether_o i_o take_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o protestant_n to_o be_v one_o church_n i_o answer_v that_o they_o have_v two_o head_n and_o we_o but_o one_o as_o they_o be_v mere_a christian_n unite_v in_o christ_n they_o be_v one_o church_n with_o we_o as_o papist_n unite_v in_o the_o pope_n they_o be_v not_o and_o if_o any_o so_o hold_v the_o papacy_n as_o not_o real_o to_o hold_v christianity_n those_o be_v not_o of_o the_o christian_a church_n with_o we_o otherwise_o they_o be_v though_o a_o corrupt_a disease_a erroneous_a part_n to_o this_o he_o say_v who_o ever_o call_v a_o king_n and_o his_o viceroy_n a_o captain_n and_o lieutenant_n two_o head_n the_o pope_n be_v a_o dependent_a officer_n answ._n 1._o but_o if_o you_o distinguish_v between_o a_o visible_a head_n and_o a_o invisible_a and_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n only_o be_v the_o visible_a head_n of_o the_o church_n as_o visible_a and_o that_o christ_n be_v only_o the_o invisible_a head_n by_o influx_n and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o monstrous_a body_n if_o it_o have_v not_o such_o a_o visible_a head_n as_o you_o do_v 2._o and_o if_o this_o visible_a head_n be_v a_o usurpation_n never_o own_v by_o christ_n then_o i_o have_v reason_n to_o distinguish_v the_o policy_n which_o be_v of_o god_n make_v from_o that_o which_o be_v a_o usurpation_n and_o of_o man_n relation_n according_o if_o any_o king_n shall_v say_v i_o be_o a_o vice-god_n or_o god_n viceroy_n to_o govern_v all_o the_o earth_n ●…nd_v that_o by_o god_n appointment_n and_o none_o can_v be_v save_v that_o obey_v i_o not_o i_o will_v distinguish_v between_o the_o world_n or_o particular_a person_n as_o god_n subject_n and_o as_o this_o vicegod_n subject_n §_o 18._o but_o he_o say_v be_v it_o possible_a for_o two_o person_n to_o be_v papist_n and_o one_o to_o destroy_v his_o christianity_n and_o the_o other_o not_o answ._n yes_o very_o possible_a and_o common_a that_o be_v one_o hold_v those_o error_n which_o by_o consequence_n subvert_v some_o article_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n but_o as_o to_o the_o word_n not_o understand_v or_o not_o understand_v the_o consequence_n or_o only_o speculative_o and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n hold_v the_o subvert_a article_n not_o discern_v the_o contradiction_n fast_o and_o practical_o another_o do_v the_o contrary_a even_o as_o a_o monothelite_n or_o a_o nestorian_a or_o eutychian_a may_v either_o be_v one_o that_o only_o as_o to_o the_o word_n or_o superficial_o err_v and_o in_o sense_n or_o practical_o hold_v the_o truth_n or_o one_o that_o be_v contrary_a this_o shall_v seem_v no_o strange_a thing_n to_o you_o for_o even_o a_o man_n that_o profess_v only_a christianity_n may_v do_v it_o but_o nomine_fw-la tenus_fw-la not_o understand_v it_o or_o superficial_o and_o not_o practical_o and_o be_v no_o true_a christian_n indeed_o §_o 19_o when_o i_o express_v my_o hope_n that_o even_o he_o and_o i_o as_o christian_n be_v of_o one_o church_n he_o will_v not_o believe_v it_o 1._o because_o i_o be_o of_o a_o church_n by_o myself_o neither_o of_o they_o nor_o any_o other_o part_n 2._o because_o i_o have_v no_o faith_n answ._n it_o seem_v then_o that_o mere_a christianity_n be_v no_o faith_n and_o that_o there_o be_v none_o of_o the_o mere_a christian_a church_n but_o i._o but_o who_o will_v believe_v the_o latter_a and_o when_o will_v he_o prove_v either_o a_o answer_n to_o w._n j_n seven_o chapter_n §_o 1._o to_o his_o question_n why_o we_o separate_v from_o they_o i_o answer_v that_o as_o they_o be_v christian_n we_o separate_v not_o from_o they_o as_o papist_n we_o be_v never_o of_o they_o but_o our_o forefather_n think_v repentance_n of_o sin_n to_o be_v no_o sin_n if_o by_o popery_n they_o separate_v from_o christianity_n they_o be_v damnable_a separatist_n if_o they_o do_v not_o we_o be_v of_o the_o same_o church_n whether_o they_o will_v or_o not_o 〈◊〉_d to_o this_o he_o say_v that_o we_o separate_v from_o they_o as_o much_o as_o the_o pelagian_n donatist_n acacian_o luciferian_o nestorian_n and_o eutychian_o do_v from_o the_o church_n answ._n 1._o the_o doctrinal_a error_n and_o the_o separation_n be_v of_o different_a consideration_n the_o pelagian_n err_v as_o some_o dominican_n say_v the_o jesuit_n do_v the_o donatist_n like_o the_o papist_n appropriate_v the_o church_n to_o their_o own_o bishop_n and_o party_n we_o do_v none_o of_o this_o lucifer_n calaritanus_n be_v too_o zealous_a against_o the_o arrian_n not_o communicate_v with_o they_o upon_o so_o short_a repentance_n as_o other_o do_v but_o they_o go_v not_o so_o far_o as_o crab_n say_v the_o roman_a council_n in_o sylvester_n day●…_n do_v that_o receive_v no_o repentance_n before_o forty_o year_n nor_o so_o far_o as_o the_o honest_a elebertine_n council_n in_o the_o number_n of_o year_n of_o man_n exclusion_n from_o the_o communion_n i_o take_v lucifer_n for_o erroneous_a and_o schismatical_a but_o not_o comparable_a to_o the_o papist_n who_o err_v far_o more_o and_o yet_o separate_v from_o most_o of_o the_o
bind_v or_o how_o can_v i_o be_v say_v to_o believe_v implicit_o their_o unknown_a doctrine_n or_o article_n of_o faith_n what_o be_v my_o implicit_a belief_n of_o scripture-particle_n but_o my_o general_n belief_n that_o all_o the_o scripture_n be_v god_n word_n and_o true_a and_o what_o be_v implicit_a belief_n of_o popish_a tradition_n in_o particular_a but_o the_o explicit_a belief_n that_o all_o popish_a tradition_n in_o general_n be_v true_a if_o therefore_o these_o disputer_n confess_v the_o sufficiency_n of_o our_o explicit_a neccessary_a belief_n and_o yet_o damn_v we_o for_o the_o insufficiency_n of_o our_o implicit_a belief_n they_o shameful_o contradict_v themselves_o and_o give_v up_o their_o cause_n §_o 14._o next_o i_o thus_o argue_v if_o sincere_a protestant_n be_v member_n of_o the_o true_a church_n as_o intrinsical_o inform_v or_o as_o bellarmine_n speak_v live_v member_n then_o profess_a protestant_n be_v member_n of_o the_o true_a church_n as_o extrinsecal_o denominate_v or_o as_o it_o be_v visible_a consist_v of_o professor_n but_o the_o antecedent_n be_v true_a ergo_fw-la so_o be_v the_o consequent_a to_o this_o when_o i_o have_v give_v the_o reason_n of_o the_o consequence_n undeniable_a and_o say_v i_o prove_v the_o antecedent_n or_o minor_a he_o say_v you_o prove_v say_v you_o your_o antecedent_n or_o minor_a which_o be_v a_o syntax_n in_o logic_n and_o deserve_v a_o ferula_fw-la for_o no_o minor_a can_v be_v a_o antecedent_n answ._n for_o this_o man_n sake_n i_o will_v know_v a_o man_n better_o than_o by_o his_o hector_n before_o i_o will_v go_v to_o school_n to_o a_o boaster_n reader_n 1._o what_o be_v that_o error_n in_o logic_n that_o be_v call_v a_o syntax_n i_o think_v order_n or_o concord_n have_v be_v no_o error_n i_o confess_v myself_o not_o wise_a enough_o to_o understand_v this_o great_a logician_n and_o his_o ferula_fw-la be_v too_o ready_a which_o must_v be_v use_v for_o syntax_n when_o it_o be_v more_o use_v for_o violation_n of_o syntax_n 2._o risum_fw-la teneatis_fw-la can_v no_o antecedent_n be_v a_o minor_a so_o do_v dr._n peter_n heylin_n tell_v i_o before_o he_o in_o his_o certamen_fw-la epistolare_fw-la i_o suppose_v i_o shall_v never_o hear_v a_o three_o say_v so_o what_o be_v the_o matter_n that_o the_o boy_n laugh_v at_o this_o and_o say_v that_o to_o deny_v the_o antecedent_n of_o a_o hypothetical_a proposition_n and_o to_o deny_v the_o minor_a be_v all_o one_o be_v it_o that_o boy_n have_v make_v all_o our_o usual_a logick_n and_o now_o these_o two_o logic_n doctor_n have_v reform_v they_o or_o have_v this_o man_n pretend_v to_o be_v a_o champion_n in_o that_o art_n in_o which_o he_o be_v below_o the_o novice_n he_o have_v hit_v it_o if_o he_o have_v hold_v to_o his_o offer_n to_o dispute_v before_o a_o lady_n a_o girl_n only_o in_o syllogism_n by_o the_o pen_n for_o this_o with_o she_o may_v have_v pass_v for_o currant_n and_o invincible_a logic_n §_o 15._o i_o prove_v the_o minor_a thus_o all_o that_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n be_v bring_v to_o the_o unfeigned_a love_n of_o god_n above_o all_o and_o special_a love_n of_o his_o servant_n and_o unfeigned_a willingness_n to_o obey_v he_o be_v member_n of_o the_o true_a church_n as_o intrinsical_o inform_v but_o such_o be_v all_o sincere_a protestant_n etc._n etc._n this_o minor_a the_o man_n deny_v and_o say_v that_o protestant_n have_v not_o these_o thing_n answ._n 1._o mark_v how_o hard_o this_o man_n be_v put_v to_o it_o to_o renounce_v his_o charity_n he_o can_v do_v it_o without_o deny_v what_o he_o grant_v a_o sincere_a professor_n of_o any_o religion_n be_v one_o that_o real_o be_v what_o he_o profess_v to_o be_v he_o deny_v not_o that_o protestant_n profess_v to_o love_n god_n etc._n etc._n and_o yet_o he_o deny_v the_o minor_a that_o sincere_a protestant_n do_v love_n god_n as_o if_o he_o that_o sincere_o profess_v to_o love_n god_n do_v not_o love_v he_o these_o be_v papist_n syllogism_n 2._o note_v that_o this_o man_n seem_v to_o know_v all_o protestant_n heart_n better_o than_o they_o do_v themselves_o and_o can_v prove_v they_o all_o hypocrite_n that_o love_v not_o god_n 3._o but_o by_o this_o you_o see_v how_o he_o reproach_v all_o those_o protestant_n that_o turn_v papist_n as_o have_v all_o be_v but_o before_o but_o graceless_a ungodly_a hypocrite_n and_o what_o wonder_v then_o if_o they_o turn_v 4._o but_o it_o may_v be_v his_o word_n formal_o be_v a_o cheat_n a_o protestant_n be_v a_o christian_a renounce_v popery_n it_o be_v his_o christianity_n which_o contain_v his_o love_n to_o god_n his_o renounce_v popery_n be_v but_o his_o freedom_n from_o their_o sin_n and_o perhaps_o the_o man_n have_v a_o mind_n to_o call_v this_o the_o form_n of_o protestant_n but_o i_o hope_v his_o talk_n shall_v not_o deprive_v we_o of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n or_o of_o our_o neighbour_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n any_o man_n that_o can_v true_o say_v that_o he_o be_v not_o a_o ungodly_a hypocrite_n without_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o man_n have_v argument_n enough_o to_o answer_v any_o papist_n in_o himself_n 5._o again_o reader_n mark_v how_o much_o these_o man_n magnify_v themselves_o and_o how_o much_o they_o vilify_v the_o word_n and_o work_n of_o god_n let_v a_o man_n see_v all_o god_n wonderful_a goodness_n in_o his_o work_n and_o in_o his_o mercy_n to_o himself_o and_o all_o mankind_n let_v he_o read_v and_o believe_v all_o the_o wonderful_a love_n of_o the_o father_n and_o grace_n of_o the_o son_n that_o be_v describe_v in_o all_o the_o scripture_n let_v he_o believe_v the_o promise_n there_o record_v of_o everlasting_a glory_n and_o all_o this_o be_v insufficient_a to_o cause_v he_o save_o to_o love_n god_n or_o man_n but_o let_v he_o but_o add_v the_o belief_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o governor_n of_o all_o the_o earth_n and_o that_o he_o and_o his_o council_n must_v be_v believe_v in_o all_o their_o tradition_n and_o exposition_n and_o then_o the_o work_n will_v be_v do_v and_o he_o may_v love_n god_n unseigned_o and_o be_v love_v by_o he_o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v not_o work_v by_o the_o scripture_n unless_o we_o take_v the_o pope_n for_o the_o expositor_n yea_o more_o if_o a_o man_n never_o hear_v of_o scripture_n or_o if_o he_o believe_v not_o in_o christ_n for_o want_v of_o the_o pope_n sufficient_a proposal_n he_o may_v love_n god_n and_o be_v save_v so_o he_o do_v but_o believe_v that_o the_o pope_n with_o his_o council_n be_v a_o sufficient_a proposer_n and_o be_v there_o any_o account_n in_o reason_n to_o be_v give_v of_o this_o strange_a phaenomenon_n why_o a_o man_n can_v love_n god_n if_o he_o believe_v in_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n and_o yet_o can_v love_v he_o by_o all_o his_o work_n and_o mercy_n with_o the_o belief_n of_o all_o the_o scripture_n or_o be_v it_o as_o very_o a_o miracle_n as_o transubstantiation_n and_o sanctification_n by_o holy-water_n or_o the_o opus_fw-la operatum_fw-la and_o one_o of_o those_o miracle_n that_o prove_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v all_o the_o church_n on_o earth_n §_o 16._o but_o he_o repeat_v again_o the_o threadbare_a reason_n have_v they_o this_o they_o will_v never_o have_v disobey_v and_o disbelieved_a all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n answ._n that_o be_v the_o pope_n and_o his_o priest_n who_o be_v against_o the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o yearly_o anathematise_v by_o the_o greek_n who_o when_o they_o have_v lose_v the_o primacy_n of_o the_o eastern_a part_n of_o one_o empire_n have_v try_v to_o make_v up_o the_o loss_n by_o lay_v claim_n to_o all_o the_o earth_n o_o of_o what_o consequence_n be_v obedience_n to_o a_o ambitious_a pope_n or_o priest_n in_o comparison_n of_o obedience_n to_o all_o the_o write_v law_n of_o god_n §_o 17._o i_o prove_v the_o minor_a two_o way_n 1._o if_o this_o the_o love_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n be_v in_o our_o profession_n than_o the_o sincere_a be_v such_o indeed_o but_o this_o be_v in_o our_o profession_n ergo_fw-la of_o this_o he_o deny_v the_o minor_a it_o be_v not_o in_o our_o profession_n what_o not_o that_o we_o love_v god_n and_o be_v willing_a to_o understand_v and_o obey_v his_o word_n be_v he_o not_o drive_v up_o to_o the_o wall_n even_o to_o another_o denial_n of_o all_o man_n eye_n and_o ear_n do_v not_o i_o profess_v it_o while_o i_o write_v these_o word_n and_o have_v not_o i_o profess_v it_o in_o sixty_o volume_n and_o more_o and_o do_v not_o protestant_a library_n contain_v such_o profession_n and_o their_o pulpit_n ring_v of_o they_o every_o lord_n day_n what_o be_v a_o profession_n but_o word_n and_o write_n and_o be_v not_o these_o audible_a and_o visible_a to_o the_o world_n and_o yet_o the_o deny_v not_o of_o the_o
sincerity_n but_o the_o very_o be_v of_o they_o be_v the_o papist_n confutation_n of_o we_o §_o 18._o second_o i_o prove_v it_o from_o our_o knowledge_n and_o sense_n of_o our_o own_o acts._n when_o i_o know_v and_o feelmy_a love_n shall_v i_o believe_v a_o pope_n that_o never_o see_v i_o that_o tell_v i_o i_o do_v not_o know_v or_o feel_v it_o to_o this_o his_o easy_a answer_n serve_v he_o say_v i_o do_v not_o feel_v that_o i_o true_o love_v god_n or_o his_o servant_n if_o i_o be_v a_o formal_n protestant_n my_o heart_n deceive_v i_o answ._n no_o wonder_v if_o all_o these_o priest_n be_v infallible_a that_o know_v all_o our_o heart_n so_o much_o better_a than_o we_o but_o who_o shall_v be_v judge_n the_o true_a searcher_n of_o heart_n if_o the_o fruit_n must_v be_v the_o evidence_n i_o shall_v rather_o fear_v that_o such_o murderer_n of_o hundred_o thousand_o as_o kill_v the_o waldenses_n albigenses_n french_a english_a dutch_a etc._n etc._n be_v like_a to_o be_v without_o love_n than_o all_o those_o meek_a and_o godly_a protestant_n that_o i_o have_v know_v for_o no_o murderer_n have_v eternal_a life_n but_o forma_fw-la be_v sometime_o take_v for_o figura_fw-la and_o for_o outward_a appearance_n only_o and_o such_o formal_a protestant_n as_o have_v but_o the_o clothing_n of_o christianity_n have_v not_o indeed_o the_o love_n of_o god_n §_o 19_o he_o add_v what_o will_v you_o say_v to_o a_o arrian_n a_o turk_n or_o jew_n that_o will_v urge_v the_o like_a knowledge_n or_o feel_n answ._n the_o same_o that_o i_o will_v do_v to_o a_o bloody_a papist_n and'i_n will_v tell_v he_o that_o if_o a_o bediam_fw-la think_v that_o he_o be_v a_o prince_n or_o a_o fool_n that_o he_o be_v wise_a or_o a_o beggar_n that_o he_o be_v a_o lord_n or_o a_o illiterate_a man_n that_o he_o be_v learned_a it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o no_o man_n can_v know_v that_o he_o be_v a_o prince_n or_o a_o lord_n or_o wise_a or_o learned_a i_o will_v tell_v he_o that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o effect_n without_o the_o adequate_a cause_n nor_o be_v there_o a_o cause_n where_o there_o be_v no_o effect_n and_o lie_v that_o perceive_v not_o god_n amiableness_n in_o the_o necessary_a demonstration_n of_o it_o can_v love_v that_o goodness_n he_o perceive_v not_o nor_o can_v any_o desire_n or_o seek_v the_o heaven_n which_o he_o believe_v not_o and_o i_o will_v tell_v he_o that_o he_o that_o believe_v not_o in_o a_o redeemer_n or_o a_o sanctifier_n can_v love_v he_o nor_o can_v he_o love_v believer_n and_o godly_a man_n as_o such_o who_o know_v not_o that_o they_o as_o such_o be_v lovely_a and_o that_o if_o real_o he_o love_v god_n and_o holiness_n and_o the_o hope_n of_o heaven_n before_o this_o world_n it_o will_v work_v in_o his_o seek_v they_o above_o the_o world_n if_o you_o have_v argue_v rational_o against_o our_o love_n of_o god_n and_o holiness_n from_o any_o prove_a defect_n in_o the_o necessary_a cause_n which_o be_v in_o you_o we_o have_v be_v oblige_v thankful_o to_o hear_v and_o try_v your_o word_n but_o let_v reason_n judge_v e._n g._n whether_o that_o man_n be_v like_a to_o love_v this_o world_n best_o and_o be_v loath_a to_o leave_v it_o who_o look_v to_o go_v at_o death_n into_o the_o flame_n of_o purgatory_n or_o he_o that_o look_v to_o go_v to_o the_o glorious_a presence_n of_o his_o redeemer_n and_o whether_o he_o be_v like_a to_o love_n god_n best_a that_o look_v eth_z to_o be_v torment_v by_o he_o in_o those_o flame_n or_o he_o that_o look_v to_o pass_v into_o heavenly_a perfect_a love_n christ_n tell_v we_o that_o forgive_a much_o cause_v love_n if_o a_o man_n be_v to_o torment_v you_o so_o long_o will_v it_o make_v you_o love_v he_o or_o at_o least_o be_v it_o a_o good_a proof_n that_o protestant_n love_v not_o god_n because_o they_o believe_v not_o that_o he_o will_v torment_v they_o in_o flame_n but_o present_o comfort_v they_o §_o 20._o ii_o my_o ad_fw-la argument_n to_o prove_v the_o perpetual_a visibility_n of_o our_o church_n be_v this_o the_o church_n who_o faith_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o its_o rule_n in_o all_o point_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n have_v be_v visible_a ever_o since_o the_o day_n of_o christ_n on_o earth_n but_o the_o church_n who_o faith_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o its_o rule_n in_o all_o point_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v it_o of_o which_o the_o protestant_n be_v member_n therefore_o the_o church_n of_o which_o the_o protestant_n be_v member_n have_v be_v visible_a etc._n etc._n here_o he_o want_v form_n again_o because_o the_o predicate_v of_o the_o minor_a be_v the_o subject_a of_o the_o conclussion_n and_o then_o he_o distinguish_v of_o the_o mayor_n of_o contain_v involute_o in_o general_a principle_n he_o grant_v it_o but_o if_o express_o he_o deny_v it_o answ._n 1._o the_o marvellous_a logician_n it_o seem_v be_v but_o for_o one_o mood_n or_o figure_n but_o by_o what_o authority_n or_o reason_n 2._o he_o deny_v that_o the_o church_n faith_n in_o all_o point_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v express_o contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n i_o prove_v the_o contrary_a ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la before_o out_o of_o bellarmine_n and_o costerus_n plain_a word_n and_o shall_v by_o and_o by_o further_a prove_v it_o mark_v again_o the_o papist_n value_v of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n he_o that_o explicit_o believe_v all_o that_o it_o express_o deliver_v and_o no_o more_o say_v these_o man_n can_v be_v save_v and_o yet_o if_o they_o believe_v none_o of_o it_o but_o a_o reward_v deity_n say_v most_o or_o some_o more_o of_o the_o creed_n say_v other_o man_n may_v be_v save_v if_o they_o do_v but_o believe_v that_o all_o be_v god_n word_n and_o truth_n which_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o priest_n or_o council_n say_v be_v such_o next_o he_o distinguish_v of_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n to_o be_v by_o all_o distinct_o know_v and_o express_o believe_v and_o so_o he_o grant_v the_o scripture-sufficiency_n very_o good_a now_o all_o that_o be_v so_o necessary_a to_o a_o distinct_a knowledge_n and_o express_a belief_n be_v there_o but_o of_o all_o thing_n to_o be_v believe_v implicit_o and_o distinct_o know_v he_o deny_v it_o these_o distinction_n suppose_v say_v he_o i_o deny_v your_o consequence_n answ._n here_o be_v all_o new_a still_o 1._o he_o call_v my_o conclusion_n my_o consequence_n and_o recite_v it_o 2._o what_o he_o mean_v by_o thing_n to_o be_v distinct_o know_v by_o all_o and_o yet_o believe_v but_o implicit_o be_v pass_v my_o understanding_n have_v to_o do_v with_o that_o man_n that_o have_v all_o this_o while_n describe_v implicit_a belief_n by_o the_o express_a belief_n of_o some_o mere_a general_n truth_n and_o must_v man_n know_v all_o that_o distinct_o which_o they_o believe_v not_o distinct_o but_o in_o their_o general_n the_o man_n sure_o be_v confound_v or_o confound_v i_o the_o general_n to_o be_v believe_v be_v the_o pope_n and_o council_n authority_n in_o propound_v and_o expound_v god_n word_n this_o be_v their_o save_a faith_n the_o belief_n of_o all_o that_o they_o propose_v be_v implicit_o contain_v in_o this_o but_o must_v all_o this_o be_v distinct_o know_v by_o all_o and_o yet_o not_o distinct_o believe_v the_o first_o will_v damn_v all_o that_o know_v not_o every_o one_o of_o their_o council_n decree_n de_fw-la fide_fw-la the_o ad_fw-la will_v show_v that_o they_o believe_v nothing_o at_o all_o for_o he_o that_o know_v distinct_o what_o the_o pope_n say_v and_o yet_o believe_v it_o not_o distinct_o can_v believe_v the_o general_a of_o his_o veracity_n but_o perhaps_o he_o speak_v distributive_o of_o two_o sort_n of_o faith_n viz._n both_o the_o implicit_a and_o the_o explicite_fw-la legeris_fw-la and_o so_o mean_v to_o deny_v the_o scripture-sufficiency_n only_o to_o the_o first_o if_o so_o i_o show_v the_o flat_a contradiction_n of_o it_o before_o where_o there_o be_v all_o that_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v express_o eo_fw-la nomine_fw-la there_o be_v all_o that_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v implicit_o because_o to_o be_v believe_v implicit_o with_o this_o man_n be_v but_o to_o be_v the_o unknown_a consequent_a or_o enclose_v of_o that_o which_o be_v believe_v express_o §_o 21._o for_o the_o proof_n of_o my_o major_n the_o scripture-sufficiency_n as_o to_o all_o thing_n common_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n after_o bellarmine_n and_o costerus_n i_o have_v cite_v the_o plain_a word_n at_o large_a of_o 1._o ragus_n in_o council_n basil._n bin._n p._n 299._o 2._o gerson_n de_fw-fr exam_fw-la doct_v p._n 2._o cont_n 2._o 3._o durandus_fw-la in_o praefat._n &_o hierom._n in_o he_o 4._o aquinas_n 22._o 9_o 1._o à_fw-fr 10._o ad_fw-la 1._o &_o de_fw-fr verit._n disp_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la q._n
sottish_a stuff_n as_o this_o 1._o when_o will_v he_o make_v i_o know_v how_o his_o sufficient_a proposal_n may_v be_v discern_v 2._o and_o how_o the_o hereticaters_n can_v know_v the_o sufficiency_n of_o the_o proposal_n to_o other_o even_o many_o kingdom_n of_o man_n that_o they_o never_o see_v see_v variety_n of_o capacity_n opportunity_n education_n temptation_n etc._n etc._n make_v that_o insufficient_a to_o one_o that_o be_v sufficient_a to_o another_o 3._o when_o will_v he_o prove_v that_o the_o plain_a scripture_n be_v no_o sufficient_a proposal_n till_o the_o credit_n of_o the_o papal_a clergy_n make_v it_o so_o and_o yet_o that_o the_o obscure_a volume_n of_o militant_a council_n that_o curse_v one_o another_o be_v sufficient_a proposal_n 4._o or_o that_o the_o word_n of_o a_o jesuit_n be_v a_o sufficient_a notice_n to_o we_o what_o be_v in_o the_o council_n or_o what_o be_v their_o sense_n 5._o or_o who_o shall_v expound_v dark_a council_n to_o we_o when_o there_o be_v no_o council_n in_o our_o age_n in_o be_v 6._o how_o shall_v we_o know_v that_o a_o culpable_a neglect_n of_o a_o sufficient_a proposal_n through_o prejudice_n or_o temptation_n may_v never_o stand_v with_o faith_n if_o so_o be_v there_o any_o man_n live_v that_o be_v not_o a_o infidel_n or_o heretic_n i_o challenge_v any_o man_n live_v to_o dare_v to_o make_v good_a that_o he_o never_o err_v or_o do_v err_v in_o any_o point_n reveal_v in_o scripture_n or_o council_n against_o sufficient_a proposal_n take_v sufficiency_n as_o it_o be_v common_o in_o the_o controversy_n of_o sufficient_a grace_n what_o if_o a_o man_n through_o culpable_a negligence_n know_v not_o how_o many_o year_n it_o be_v from_o adam_n to_o the_o flood_n or_o know_v not_o who_o be_v the_o father_n of_o arphaxad_n etc._n etc._n when_o these_o be_v sufficient_o propose_v do_v this_o prove_v that_o he_o believe_v not_o god_n veracity_n as_o if_o there_o be_v no_o other_o sin_n that_o can_v frustrate_v any_o one_o sufficient_a proposal_n 7._o but_o it_o be_v the_o fate_n of_o rash_a condemner_n to_o condemn_v themselves_o most_o notorious_o if_o the_o plain_a word_n of_o scripture_n in_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o cup_n in_o the_o eucharist_n against_o pray_v in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n etc._n etc._n if_o the_o sensible_a evidence_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n to_o all_o sound_a sense_n that_o be_v near_o be_v not_o a_o sufficient_a proposal_n what_o be_v sure_o not_o such_o self-contradicting_a dispute_n as_o this_o of_o w._n i._n and_o other_o like_v he_o nor_o the_o cant_n of_o the_o church_n and_o all_o the_o world_n by_o a_o partial_a sect_n but_o if_o scripture_n the_o tradition_n and_o judgement_n of_o the_o most_o of_o christian_n reason_n and_o sense_n can_v make_v up_o a_o sufficient_a proposal_n out_o of_o their_o own_o mouth_n be_v these_o man_n condemn_v as_o heretic_n to_o be_v avoid_v by_o all_o good_a christian_n but_o i_o have_v more_o charity_n for_o some_o of_o they_o than_o herein_o they_o exercise_v to_o themselves_o or_o other_o and_o in_o particular_a i_o will_v be_v so_o far_o from_o partiality_n as_o to_o profess_v that_o though_o pope_n honorius_n be_v a_o anathematise_v heretic_n in_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o 6_o and_o other_o general_a council_n and_o of_o his_o successor_n pope_n i_o be_o not_o one_o of_o those_o that_o take_v he_o real_o for_o such_o in_o w._n i_n sense_n as_o hold_v a_o doctrine_n that_o do_v unchristen_v he_o nay_o i_o take_v his_o epistle_n to_o sergius_n read_v in_o the_o 6_o general_n council_n to_o be_v two_o of_o the_o honest_a peaceable_a epistle_n that_o i_o have_v read_v from_o a_o pope_n except_o some_o of_o leo_n and_o few_o more_o and_o i_o think_v that_o his_o counsel_n for_o to_o avoid_v contention_n to_o forbear_v both_o the_o name_n of_o two_o operation_n and_o of_o one_o operation_n and_o leave_v it_o to_o grammarian_n and_o hold_v to_o plain_a scripture-word_n be_v honest_a counsel_n and_o the_o hereticate_a of_o he_o and_o the_o rest_n by_o that_o council_n increase_v not_o my_o veneration_n but_o my_o great_a dislike_n of_o hereticate_a council_n and_o the_o faction_n of_o the_o bishop_n it_o be_v not_o long_o after_o under_o the_o emperor_n philipicus_fw-la when_o another_o general_a council_n so_o great_a as_o it_o be_v say_v it_o consist_v of_o innumerable_a bishop_n at_o constantinople_n revoke_v undo_v and_o destroy_v all_o this_o that_o be_v do_v against_o honorius_n and_o the_o monothelite_n at_o the_o say_v 6_o council_n so_o ordinary_o do_v general_n council_n condemn_v each_o other_o but_o what_o i_o say_v in_o excuse_n of_o honorius_n i_o must_v say_v also_o in_o excuse_n of_o sergius_n constant._n for_o he_o say_v but_o the_o same_o that_o honorius_n do_v viz._n that_o he_o will_v have_v have_v the_o controversy_n and_o the_o name_n of_o two_o or_o one_o operation_n lay_v by_o and_o yet_o binnius_n can_v call_v sergius_n a_o lie_a heretic_n while_o he_o with_o other_o excuse_v honorius_n for_o the_o same_o and_o on_o this_o occasion_n i_o will_v conclude_v with_o a_o note_n out_o of_o the_o two_o epistle_n of_o cyrus_n to_o sergius_n read_v in_o the_o same_o 6_o general_n council_n which_o have_v this_o title_n deo_fw-la honorabili_fw-la me●…_n domino_fw-la benigno_fw-la principi_fw-la pastorum_fw-la patri_fw-la patrum_fw-la universali_fw-la patriarchae_fw-la sergio_n à_fw-la cyro_fw-la humil●…_n vestro_fw-la i_o will_v know_v whether_o the_o pope_n can_v show_v that_o ever_o any_o one_o of_o his_o predecessor_n have_v high_a title_n give_v he_o than_o these_o and_o if_o these_o prove_v not_o a_o universal_a sovereignty_n of_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n whether_o the_o like_a or_o less_o will_v prove_v it_o for_o rome_n if_o you_o say_v that_o it_o be_v but_o a_o heretic_n that_o give_v it_o he_o i_o answer_v 1._o that_o be_v nothing_o to_o the_o matter_n in_o hand_n 2._o he_o be_v but_o such_o a_o harmless_a heretic_n as_o honorius_n 3._o the_o council_n reprehend_v not_o the_o title_n many_o such_o instance_n may_v be_v give_v of_o as_o high_a title_n give_v to_o jerusalem_n alexandria_n antioch_n constantinople_n as_o rome_n pretend_v for_o the_o proof_n of_o its_o universal-church-monarchy_n and_o if_o it_o prove_v no_o such_o power_n in_o other_o it_o prove_v it_o not_o in_o the_o pope_n finis_fw-la ☞_o sect._n 1_o sect._n 2_o sect._n 3_o sect._n 4._o sect._n 5._o sect._n 6._o sect._n 7._o sect._n 8._o sect._n 9_o sect._n 10._o sect._n 11._o sect._n 12._o sect._n 13._o sect._n 14._o sect._n 15._o sect._n 16._o sect._n 17._o sect._n 18._o sect._n 19_o sect._n 20._o sect._n 21._o sect._n 22._o ☞_o sect._n 23._o sect._n 〈◊〉_d sect._n 25._o sect._n 26._o sect._n 27._o sect._n 28._o sect._n 2._o 2._o see_v they_o answer_v by_o joh._n rossens_n bishop_n bucke●…idge_n sect._n 3_o sect._n 4._o sect._n 5._o sect._n 6._o sect._n 7._o so_o all_o that_o take_v not_o every_o priest_n for_o a_o lawful_a superior_a &_o to_o contradict_v he_o though_o about_o a_o word_n must_v be_v burn_v &_o damn_v sect._n 8._o sect._n 9_o sect._n 10._o ☞_o ☞_o sect._n 11._o sect._n 12._o sect._n 13._o sect._n 14._o sect._n 1_o 1_o yet_o he_o maintain_v himself_o that_o heretic_n be_v no_o christian_n but_o equivocal_o baronius_n binnius_n bellarmine_n genebrard_n your_o great_a flatterer_n confess_v it_o and_o much_o more_o who_o that_o ever_o read_v the_o council_n and_o church-history_n doubt_v of_o it_o see_v then_o the_o impudence_n of_o man_n pretend_v to_o lay_v their_o cause_n on_o tradition_n and_o history_n i_o say_v that_o the_o charge_n of_o simony_n make_v many_o of_o they_o uncapable_a to_o which_o he_o give_v no_o answer_n for_o their_o most_o flatter_a historian_n assert_v it_o and_o lament_v it_o sect._n 2._o sect._n 3_o ☞_o sect._n 4._o sect._n 5._o sect._n 6._o sect._n 7._o sect._n 8._o sect._n 1_o sect._n 2._o ☞_o sect._n 4._o sect._n 5._o sect._n 6._o sect._n 7._o sect._n 8._o 8._o or_o rather_o the_o emperor_n for_o some_o bishop_n put_v in_o several_a name_n and_o the_o emperor_n choose_v nectarius_n a_o unbaptised_a man_n and_o so_o no_o christian_a in_o the_o church_n judgement_n sect._n 9_o sect._n 10._o sect._n 11._o sect._n 12._o sect._n 13._o sect._n 14._o sect._n 1●…_n sect._n 2._o sect._n 3_o this_o se●…ms_n to_o confess_v that_o your_o people_n have_v no_o ●…ivine_a faith_n for_o our_o belief_n of_o a_o priest_n say_v this_o book_n be_v canonical_a be_v but_o humane_a sect._n 4._o ☞_o sect._n 5._o sect._n 6._o sect._n 1_o sect._n 2._o sect._n 4._o sect._n 5._o sect._n 6._o sect._n 7._o sect._n 8._o sect._n 9_o sect._n 1_o sect._n 2._o sect._n 3_o sect._n 4._o sect._n 5._o sect._n 6._o sect._n 7._o sect._n 8._o sect._n 9_o sect._n 10._o sect._n 11._o sect._n 12._o sect._n 13._o sect._n 14._o sect._n 1_o sect._n 2._o sect._n 3_o vid._n
which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n the_o whole_a christian_a world_n as_o head_v only_o by_o christ_n of_o which_o the_o reform_a be_v the_o sound_a part_n or_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n and_o his_o subject_n as_o such_o in_o three_o part_n i._o the_o papist_n confusion_n in_o explain_v the_o term_n of_o the_o question_n not_o able_a to_o bear_v the_o light_n ii_o a_o defence_n of_o a_o disputation_n concern_v the_o continue_a visibility_n of_o the_o church_n of_o which_o the_o protestant_n be_v member_n iii_o a_o defence_n of_o the_o several_a additional_a proof_n of_o the_o say_a visibility_n by_o richard_n baxter_n write_a especial_o to_o instruct_v the_o young_a unexperienced_a scholar_n how_o to_o deal_v with_o these_o deceiver_n in_o these_o dangerous_a time_n london_n print_v and_o be_v to_o be_v sell_v by_o richard_n janeway_n in_o butcher-hall_n lane_n 1679._o the_o preface_n to_o the_o lover_n of_o truth_n above_o eighteen_o year_n pass_v i_o receive_v a_o paper_n by_o the_o mediation_n of_o one_o mr._n langhorne_n from_o one_o that_o call_v himself_o william_n johnson_n to_o prove_v the_o papal_a church_n to_o be_v the_o catholic_n because_o no_o other_o have_v be_v visible_a in_o all_o age_n i_o answer_v it_o and_o receive_v a_o reply_n and_o write_v a_o rejoinder_n but_o be_v not_o rich_a enough_o to_o pay_v either_o a_o amanuensis_fw-la or_o transcriber_n i_o never_o to_o my_o remembrance_n take_v a_o copy_n of_o any_o book_n which_o i_o write_v except_o this_o rejoinder_n to_o he_o and_o one_o other_o and_o i_o never_o to_o my_o remembrance_n lose_v any_o but_o those_o two_o when_o i_o have_v send_v this_o by_o the_o ordinary_a carrier_n he_o lose_v it_o but_o take_v on_o he_o that_o he_o never_o know_v how_o whereupon_o when_o i_o look_v for_o a_o reply_n i_o receive_v a_o insult_a letter_n for_o not_o answer_v but_o when_o i_o send_v my_o rejoinder_n the_o second_o time_n i_o can_v never_o have_v any_o reply_n thereto_o above_o a_o year_n after_o come_v up_o to_o london_n at_o the_o king_n restoration_n i_o inquire_v after_o the_o disputer_n and_o call_v yet_o for_o some_o reply_n but_o can_v get_v none_o and_o i_o be_v there_o inform_v that_o his_o name_n be_v terret_n and_o that_o he_o usual_o live_v with_o the_o earl_n of_o shrewsbury_n within_o seven_o mile_n of_o i_o when_o i_o be_v tell_v he_o live_v near_o a_o hundred_o mile_n off_o but_o that_o he_o be_v one_o of_o the_o great_a of_o their_o disputer_n about_o london_n where_o he_o spend_v much_o of_o his_o time_n and_o have_v late_o dispute_v with_o mr._n pet._n gunning_n and_o mr._n pierson_n now_o both_o bishop_n and_o have_v print_v the_o dispute_n without_o their_o consent_n and_o lest_o he_o shall_v do_v so_o by_o any_o part_n of_o i_o i_o send_v he_o word_n that_o if_o he_o will_v not_o prosecute_v the_o dispute_n i_o will_v publish_v what_o be_v do_v whereupon_o he_o offer_v to_o do_v it_o rather_o by_o conference_n than_o by_o write_v which_o i_o accept_v and_o he_o come_v to_o i_o and_o we_o agree_v to_o begin_v with_o the_o true_a explication_n of_o some_o term_n which_o be_v like_a to_o be_v most_o use_v in_o our_o controversy_n i_o offer_v to_o give_v he_o my_o sense_n of_o any_o term_n of_o which_o he_o will_v desire_v it_o and_o desire_v the_o like_a of_o he_o which_o he_o grant_v he_o desire_v none_o at_o all_o of_o i_o but_o such_o term_n as_o i_o offer_v to_o he_o he_o write_v i_o immediate_o his_o explication_n of_o which_o because_o it_o rather_o increase_v the_o darkness_n and_o uncertainty_n i_o except_v against_o it_o and_o desire_v full_a explication_n by_o this_o time_n our_o hour_n be_v at_o a_o end_n and_o i_o expect_v he_o to_o prosecute_v the_o dispute_n but_o can_v never_o see_v he_o more_o whereupon_o after_o urgency_n and_o expectation_n i_o publish_v what_o have_v pass_v between_o we_o the_o next_o year_n the_o countess_n of_o balcarre_n now_o countess_n of_o argyle_n a_o person_n to_o who_o i_o have_v extraordinary_a obligation_n send_v for_o i_o be_v in_o great_a affliction_n for_o her_o elder_a daughter_n turn_v papist_n whereupon_o i_o offer_v a_o conference_n with_o the_o person_n that_o have_v persuade_v she_o or_o any_o other_o who_o she_o will_v choose_v which_o the_o lady_n accept_v and_o undertake_v to_o bring_v one_o speedy_o to_o perform_v it_o but_o at_o last_o she_o say_v the_o person_n be_v afraid_a of_o the_o danger_n of_o the_o law_n i_o urge_v she_o still_o and_o then_o she_o tell_v i_o that_o when_o he_o know_v who_o it_o be_v that_o he_o be_v to_o speak_v with_o he_o profess_v that_o he_o fear_v no_o danger_n from_o i_o and_o great_o honour_v i_o be_v one_o that_o know_v i_o but_o refuse_v the_o dispute_n i_o provoke_v she_o to_o get_v some_o other_o though_o it_o be_v the_o able_a that_o then_o attend_v on_o the_o queen_n mother_n who_o then_o encourage_v she_o but_o she_o will_v have_v none_o but_o he_o that_o do_v refuse_v it_o whereupon_o her_o mother_n be_v in_o danger_n of_o death_n by_o grief_n i_o be_v force_v to_o speak_v more_o harsh_o to_o she_o and_o ask_v she_o whether_o she_o deal_v wise_o to_o follow_v such_o as_o dare_v not_o let_v she_o hear_v what_o be_v to_o be_v say_v i_o tell_v she_o that_o if_o he_o will_v spend_v but_o one_o hour_n in_o give_v the_o reason_n why_o she_o shall_v turn_v papist_n and_o let_v i_o spend_v another_o hour_n in_o give_v she_o my_o reason_n to_o the_o contrary_a i_o will_v leave_v the_o issue_n to_o her_o conscience_n after_o long_a denial_n at_o last_o she_o tell_v i_o that_o the_o person_n do_v consent_v on_o condition_n that_o there_o may_v be_v no_o speak_v but_o only_o write_v ex_fw-la tempore_fw-la and_o nothing_o do_v but_o by_o syllogism_n according_a to_o the_o law_n of_o disputation_n i_o ask_v she_o whether_o that_o way_n be_v most_o suitable_a to_o her_o understanding_n and_o patience_n and_o whether_o she_o will_v stay_v till_o we_o have_v do_v our_o write_n which_o may_v possible_o be_v some_o year_n and_o whether_o she_o may_v not_o as_o well_o read_v what_o be_v write_v already_o but_o when_o nothing_o else_o will_v be_v consent_v to_o i_o yield_v to_o such_o writing_n so_o be_v it_o she_o will_v but_o hear_v our_o several_a reason_n one_o hour_n or_o two_o first_o and_o when_o that_o can_v not_o be_v obtain_v i_o consent_v to_o meet_v he_o and_o only_o to_o write_v but_o just_o when_o the_o time_n come_v the_o lady_n be_v steal_v away_o and_o when_o they_o follow_v and_o overtake_v she_o she_o tell_v they_o that_o she_o be_v but_o go_v on_o some_o business_n and_o will_v present_o return_v her_o mother_n profess_v that_o before_o her_o perversion_n she_o scarce_o ever_o find_v she_o in_o a_o lie_n or_o disobedience_n and_o after_o can_v scarce_o believe_v any_o thing_n that_o she_o say_v but_o she_o go_v to_o a_o nunnery_n in_o france_n and_o her_o mother_n see_v she_o no_o more_o but_o ere_o long_o receive_v letter_n of_o the_o reason_n of_o her_o religion_n which_o at_o her_o mother_n desire_n i_o answer_v but_o you_o may_v suppose_v that_o they_o suffer_v she_o not_o to_o see_v the_o answer_n when_o she_o be_v go_v i_o understand_v that_o it_o be_v this_o same_o mr._n w._n johnson_n alias_o terret_n who_o be_v the_o man_n that_o have_v seduce_v she_o and_o refuse_v the_o dispute_n but_o not_o long_o after_o he_o print_v a_o reply_n to_o the_o book_n which_o i_o have_v publish_v and_o call_v it_o novelty_n repress_v which_o when_o i_o peruse_v i_o see_v that_o a_o rejoinder_n will_v be_v of_o little_a use_n because_o it_o must_v consist_v for_o the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o the_o detection_n of_o his_o fallacious_a word_n and_o of_o the_o vindication_n of_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o church-history_n and_o the_o former_a will_v rather_o tire_v than_o edisie_v the_o reader_n and_o the_o late_a will_v profit_v none_o but_o those_o that_o be_v already_o well_o acquaint_v with_o church-history_n or_o such_o as_o will_v full_o search_v the_o author_n cite_v till_o they_o understand_v by_o they_o who_o it_o be_v that_o cit_v they_o aright_o he_o that_o will_v not_o do_v this_o can_v judge_v of_o our_o case_n and_o he_o that_o will_v do_v it_o need_v not_o my_o help_n wherefore_o have_v much_o better_a work_n and_o no_o time_n to_o spare_v expect_v that_o my_o change_n be_v near_o my_o conscience_n forbid_v i_o such_o a_o frivolous_a expense_n of_o time_n as_o a_o rejoinder_n to_o his_o reply_n will_v prove_v but_o have_v since_o write_v many_o book_n against_o popery_n to_o none_o of_o which_o i_o can_v procure_v yet_o a_o word_n of_o answer_n and_o hear_v that_o they_o be_v oblige_v not_o to_o answer_v i_o till_o i_o be_o dead_a
denominate_v from_o the_o prime_n or_o second_o efficient_a of_o the_o revelation_n it_o be_v the_o belief_n of_o god_n and_o of_o christ_n as_o mediator_n and_o not_o of_o the_o apostle_n and_o so_o god_n own_o veracity_n and_o not_o man_n be_v the_o objectum_fw-la formale_a fidei_fw-la divinae_fw-la 4._o but_o why_o may_v not_o a_o subordinate_a humane_a faith_n be_v conjoin_v with_o this_o and_o so_o we_o believe_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o messiah_n at_o once_o 1._o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o god_n 2._o of_o christ_n as_o man_n 3_o and_o of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n 1._o do_v not_o the_o union_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n with_o the_o humane_a make_v christ_n as_o man_n to_o be_v credible_a if_o so_o why_o shall_v we_o not_o believe_v he_o 2._o do_v not_o the_o sanctify_a work_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o divine_a inspiration_n join_v to_o it_o make_v the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n credible_a person_n if_o so_o why_o shall_v we_o not_o believe_v they_o 3._o do_v not_o the_o miracle_n which_o they_o wrought_v render_v the_o person_n and_o their_o testimony_n credible_a together_o with_o the_o circumstance_n of_o their_o be_v eye-witness_n and_o suchlike_a 4._o be_v not_o every_o honest_a man_n credible_a according_a to_o the_o measure_n of_o his_o skill_n and_o honesty_n 5._o do_v not_o every_o man_n know_v that_o there_o may_v be_v many_o efficient_a cause_n conjoin_v in_o produce_v one_o effect_n may_v not_o faith_n now_o be_v wrought_v by_o the_o preacher_n word_n and_o spirit_n why_o else_o do_v christ_n say_v to_o paul_n act_v 26._o 17_o 18_o i_o send_v thou_o to_o open_v their_o eye_n and_o turn_v they_o etc._n etc._n and_o paul_n direct_v timothy_n to_o save_v himself_o and_o those_o that_o hear_v he_o why_o may_v not_o believe_v god_n believe_v christ_n as_o man_n and_o believe_v peter_n and_o john_n etc._n etc._n that_o see_v he_o rise_v be_v conjunct_a cause_n of_o our_o faith_n in_o christ_n resurrection_n if_o they_o may_v not_o produce_v one_o faith_n at_o least_o they_o may_v produce_v three_o faith_n unite_v by_o conjunction_n but_o will_v one_o ever_o have_v expect_v this_o from_o a_o jesuit_n or_o roman_a priest_n remember_v reader_n that_o divine_a belief_n and_o a_o belief_n of_o the_o church_n council_n pope_n or_o priest_n be_v not_o to_o be_v take_v for_o conjunct_a cause_n of_o our_o believe_v the_o gospel_n or_o christian_a faith_n in_o this_o man_n opinion_n but_o he_o say_v though_o the_o prophet_n be_v a_o humane_a person_n yet_o he_o speak_v when_o he_o be_v inspire_v by_o god_n not_o by_o humane_a but_o divine_a authority_n god_n speak_v by_o his_o mouth_n ans._n it_o be_v veracity_n that_o be_v the_o thing_n that_o we_o now_o speak_v of_o and_o be_v the_o authority_n in_o question_n and_o do_v not_o god_n veracity_n give_v veracity_n to_o the_o speaker_n and_o use_v it_o do_v god_n speak_v by_o prophet_n and_o christ_n humanity_n as_o through_o a_o inanimate_a pipe_n or_o whistle_n or_o as_o by_o balaam_n ass_n do_v he_o make_v no_o use_n of_o the_o reason_n and_o honesty_n of_o the_o speaker_n nor_o make_v they_o more_o know_v and_o more_o honest_a true_a and_o careful_a that_o they_o may_v be_v the_o fit_a to_o be_v believe_v be_v this_o roman_a divinity_n why_o then_o do_v the_o apostle_n so_o oft_o protest_v that_o they_o speak_v the_o truth_n and_o lie_v not_o even_o of_o that_o which_o they_o have_v see_v and_o hear_v will_v the_o gospel_n have_v be_v equal_o credible_a to_o we_o if_o all_o the_o witness_n have_v in_o other_o matter_n be_v knave_n and_o liar_n 2._o reader_n judge_v whether_o those_o that_o accuse_v the_o roman_a clergy_n of_o fanaticism_n and_o enthusiasm_n do_v they_o any_o wrong_n while_o they_o think_v that_o god_n make_v they_o infallible_a by_o such_o inspiration_n as_o make_v no_o use_n of_o their_o reason_n learning_n or_o honesty_n and_o read_v but_o what_o their_o own_o historian_n say_v of_o fifty_o pope_n together_o beside_o all_o the_o rest_n and_o of_o the_o nine_o and_o ten_o century_n of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o the_o pope_n that_o be_v lad_n and_o can_v not_o read_v mass_n but_o be_v illiterate_a read_v what_o their_o council_n have_v say_v of_o some_o who_o they_o depose_v as_o inhuman_a monster_n and_o judge_v whether_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o believe_v that_o any_o inspiration_n use_v those_o man_n as_o infallible_a deliverer_n of_o that_o christian_a faith_n and_o see_v here_o why_o it_o be_v that_o they_o think_v wit_n and_o honesty_n no_o more_o necessary_a in_o pope_n or_o council_n if_o god_n use_v they_o but_o as_o a_o organ-pipe_n or_o trumpet_n pag._n 18._o when_o he_o be_v urge_v to_o tell_v i_o what_o it_o be_v that_o be_v the_o necessary_a belief_n of_o their_o church_n 21._o which_o must_v make_v a_o man_n a_o member_n of_o it_o he_o again_o bid_v i_o tell_v he_o what_o point_v i_o make_v essential_a to_o a_o christian_a and_o i_o shall_v save_v he_o the_o labour_n ans._n and_o be_v we_o indeed_o agree_v and_o yet_o do_v they_o writeso_fw-mi many_o volume_n to_o the_o contrary_a reader_n i_o take_v he_o at_o his_o word_n i_o have_v say_v that_o it_o be_v the_o belief_n and_o consent_n to_o the_o baptismal_a covenant_n that_o be_v the_o constitutive_a essence_n of_o a_o christian._n remember_v this_o when_o they_o jest_v at_o fundamental_o and_o tell_v we_o of_o damnation_n if_o we_o believe_v not_o their_o council_n and_o the_o country-priest_n that_o be_v the_o reporter_n of_o they_o remember_v now_o the_o extent_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n that_o it_o reach_v to_o all_o that_o believe_v and_o consent_v to_o the_o baptismal_a covenant_n but_o will_v these_o waver_a man_n long_o stand_v to_o this_o and_o confess_v their_o sect_n to_o be_v but_o a_o four_o or_o three_o part_n of_o the_o church_n but_o perhaps_o they_o will_v say_v that_o word_n not_o understand_v be_v no_o true_a faith_n we_o be_v yet_o to_o seek_v what_o believe_v in_o god_n the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n do_v mean_a and_o comprehend_v answ._n these_o ignorances_n or_o artifices_fw-la have_v too_o long_o abuse_v unstudy_v man_n it_o be_v not_o now_o the_o unsearchable_a truth_n of_o man_n subjective_n faith_n or_o internal_a act_n which_o we_o dispute_v of_o but_o it_o be_v of_o necessary_a objective_n faith_n or_o what_o ex_fw-la parte_fw-la objecti_fw-la be_v essential_o necessary_a to_o true_a subjective_n faith_n in_o case_n it_o be_v true_o believe_v which_o god_n only_o can_v tell_v and_o i_o say_v 1._o it_o be_v no_o mere_a word_n speak_v more_o or_o less_o which_o can_v prove_v to_o another_o the_o sincerity_n of_o the_o speaker_n belief_n of_o they_o 2._o but_o the_o word_n of_o the_o baptismal_a profession_n and_o covenant_n if_o sincere_o believe_v contain_v all_o essential_a to_o the_o christian_a faith_n 3._o and_o for_o more_o or_o few_o word_n i_o say_v that_o the_o more_o understand_v any_o man_n have_v the_o more_o full_o and_o easy_o he_o may_v understand_v the_o sense_n of_o those_o word_n though_o general_a and_o few_o but_o to_o a_o ignorant_a person_n there_o must_v be_v many_o word_n and_o oft_o repeat_v to_o make_v he_o understand_v the_o same_o thing_n which_o the_o other_o do_v by_o these_o few_o and_o must_v we_o therefore_o have_v as_o many_o symbol_n of_o christianity_n as_o there_o be_v various_a degree_n of_o understanding_n 4._o and_o the_o church_n have_v in_o its_o best_a time_n take_v up_o with_o the_o creed_n as_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o baptismal_a faith_n and_o if_o it_o now_o contain_v any_o word_n more_o than_o essential_a that_o cross_v not_o its_o use_n which_o be_v to_o be_v a_o just_a and_o satisfactory_a explication_n of_o that_o baptismal_a faith_n which_o have_v nothing_o but_o the_o essential_o and_o according_o till_o faith_n and_o piety_n degenerate_v into_o opinion_n and_o tyranny_n baptise_a person_n be_v account_v christian_n and_o member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o as_o oblige_v to_o live_v as_o christ_n disciple_n in_o love_n to_o one_o another_o it_o be_v none_o but_o christ_n himself_o who_o institute_v baptism_n as_o our_o christen_n to_o be_v the_o symbol_n and_o badge_n of_o his_o disciple_n pag._n 19_o when_o i_o have_v press_v he_o to_o a_o particular_a answer_n and_o tell_v he_o what_o will_v follow_v 22._o upon_o the_o answer_n which_o i_o suppose_v he_o may_v make_v he_o tell_v i_o that_o divine_n have_v a_o hundred_o time_n tell_v we_o that_o some_o thing_n must_v be_v believe_v necessitate_v praecepti_fw-la and_o some_o thing_n necessitate_v medii_fw-la ans._n we_o have_v hear_v some_o thing_n some_o thing_n so_o oft_o that_o we_o will_v fain_o know_v what_o thing_n at_o last_o be_v necessary_a ut_fw-la media_fw-la reader_n if_o these_o writer_n must_v not_o be_v ashamed_a of_o their_o
church_n do_v notorious_o believe_v and_o practise_v the_o administration_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n in_o both_o kind_n the_o cup_n as_o well_o as_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o celebration_n of_o public_a worship_n in_o a_o know_a tongue_n and_o the_o read_n and_o hear_v of_o the_o scripture_n in_o a_o know_a tongue_n by_o the_o people_n and_o other_o such_o like_a but_o yet_o i_o will_v not_o take_v you_o at_o your_o word_n nor_o call_v you_o heretic_n mere_o on_o the_o account_n assert_v by_o you_o for_o i_o know_v that_o your_o rule_n be_v false_a and_o if_o a_o man_n have_v know_v that_o the_o universal_a church_n have_v hold_v some_o opinion_n of_o chronology_n or_o genealogy_n or_o cosmography_n as_o about_o cainan_n or_o the_o age_n of_o sem_fw-mi or_o that_o there_o be_v no_o artipode_n especial_o in_o the_o dismal_a nine_o century_n and_o if_o he_o have_v think_v that_o they_o take_v this_o point_n for_o a_o divine_a revelation_n believe_v the_o septuagint_n or_o some_o other_o mistranslation_n which_o be_v common_o receive_v before_o jeromes_n time_n this_o man_n so_o think_v that_o the_o whole_a church_n then_o err_v in_o so_o small_a a_o point_n be_v no_o heretic_n for_o so_o think_v for_o i_o will_v know_v of_o yourself_o whether_o the_o pope_n and_o all_o their_o follower_n be_v not_o heretic_n for_o the_o septuagint_n be_v long_o take_v by_o the_o universal_a church_n for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o so_o be_v the_o vulgar_a latin_a long_v after_o by_o your_o universal_a roman_a church_n and_o consequent_o that_o those_o text_n be_v god_n word_n which_o yet_o afterward_o you_o alter_v many_o hundred_o or_o thousand_o alteration_n in_o the_o one_o be_v make_v by_o sixtus_n 5_o and_o clement_n 8_o all_o which_o be_v so_o many_o judgement_n that_o the_o church_n have_v err_v that_o before_o take_v the_o other_o reading_n for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n unless_o you_o can_v make_v one_o thing_n god_n word_n to_o day_n and_o the_o contrary_a to_o morrow_n 5._o but_o by_o this_o rule_n also_o we_o be_v acquit_v from_o heresy_n if_o it_o be_v not_o notorious_a to_o we_o that_o the_o universal_a church_n believe_v and_o practise_v contrary_a to_o we_o which_o sure_o be_v notorious_a to_o very_a few_o at_o most_o and_o indeed_o we_o differ_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o more_o because_o we_o dare_v not_o with_o they_o differ_v from_o the_o belief_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n in_o this_o and_o in_o former_a age_n r._n b._n be_v not_o the_o bible_n a_o public_a testimony_n and_o record_n and_o be_v universal_o receive_v be_v a_o universal_a tradition_n and_o yet_o abundance_n of_o truth_n in_o it_o be_v not_o actual_o know_v or_o believe_v by_o most_o of_o your_o own_o church_n w._n j._n it_o be_v only_o a_o tradition_n that_o whatever_o be_v there_o deliver_v be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o it_o be_v no_o tradition_n that_o such_o a_o determinate_a sense_n and_o no_o other_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o every_o sentence_n 13._o contain_v in_o it_o when_o according_a to_o the_o analogy_n of_o faith_n the_o word_n be_v capable_a of_o many_o sense_n r._n b._n worse_o and_o worse_o still_o 1._o tradition_n tell_v we_o that_o this_o bible_n be_v god_n word_n this_o word_n of_o god_n be_v significant_a and_o intelligible_a or_o else_o it_o be_v worse_a and_o more_o defective_a than_o the_o common_a word_n of_o man_n this_o intelligible_a bible_n or_o word_n therefore_o deliver_v to_o we_o its_o own_o sense_n if_o not_o than_o council_n do_v not_o deliver_v we_o the_o sense_n of_o god_n word_n or_o their_o own_o for_o god_n can_v speak_v as_o well_o as_o they_o and_o their_o word_n be_v no_o more_o plain_a than_o he_o yet_o a_o multitude_n of_o plain_a intelligible_a text_n be_v not_o understand_v by_o many_o of_o your_o church_n who_o you_o call_v not_o heretic_n yea_o your_o learned_a commentator_n differ_v and_o fight_v about_o their_o sense_n 2._o therefore_o when_o you_o talk_v of_o every_o sentence_n you_o do_v but_o fly_v and_o hide_v your_o fraud_n if_o your_o meaning_n be_v that_o no_o sentence_n of_o scripture_n be_v divine_a revelation_n as_o they_o be_v in_o god_n own_o word_n but_o as_o expound_v by_o your_o church_n all_o christian_a ear_n shall_v abhor_v your_o blasphemy_n if_o you_o mean_v only_o that_o there_o be_v some_o text_n so_o difficult_a as_o that_o most_o christian_n can_v understand_v they_o or_o that_o be_v capable_a of_o various_a sense_n we_o grant_v it_o but_o what_o be_v those_o to_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v every_o man_n a_o heretic_n that_o err_v about_o the_o sense_n of_o any_o one_o plain_a text_n of_o scripture_n or_o not_o and_o it_o be_v perverse_a that_o you_o say_v of_o divers_a sense_n according_a to_o the_o analogy_n of_o faith_n for_o a_o text_n may_v be_v expound_v contrary_a to_o the_o plain_a word_n and_o context_n which_o yet_o be_v not_o expound_v contrary_a to_o the_o analogy_n of_o faith_n if_o by_o that_o word_n you_o mean_v as_o be_v usual_a contrary_a to_o the_o harmony_n of_o christian_a necessary_a truth_n yea_o or_o contrary_a to_o any_o other_o truth_n whatever_o save_o that_o text_n itself_o and_o now_o reader_n i_o leave_v it_o to_o thy_o reason_n whether_o this_o man_n have_v give_v we_o any_o regardable_a notice_n at_o all_o what_o be_v heresy_n or_o what_o they_o mean_v by_o it_o or_o have_v not_o trifle_v and_o say_v nothing_o but_o what_o heresy_n be_v i_o will_v brief_o tell_v you_o the_o word_n signify_v election_n be_v use_v in_o the_o begin_n sometime_o for_o any_o sect_n or_o party_n divide_v from_o the_o common_a body_n of_o the_o 14._o church_n and_o christian_n be_v call_v a_o heresy_n by_o the_o jew_n by_o the_o christian_n the_o name_n signify_v any_o party_n of_o man_n that_o profess_v to_o differ_v in_o some_o necessary_a thing_n from_o the_o common_a body_n of_o christian_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n do_v separate_v from_o they_o as_o unmeet_a for_o their_o communion_n and_o gather_v themselves_o into_o divide_a society_n so_o that_o differ_v from_o the_o apostolical_a doctrine_n and_o church_n and_o make_v different_a sect_n or_o society_n therefore_o which_o separate_v from_o and_o oppose_v the_o church_n be_v call_v heresy_n by_o the_o apostle_n and_o it_o be_v the_o same_o thing_n with_o the_o gross_a sort_n of_o schism_n and_o the_o common_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n schism_n than_o be_v low_a signify_v either_o the_o contentious_a make_n of_o division_n within_o a_o church_n without_o separate_n from_o it_o or_o else_o the_o break_n of_o one_o church_n into_o many_o without_o separate_v from_o other_o church_n or_o the_o generality_n of_o christian_n and_o so_o long_o after_o the_o word_n heresy_n be_v sometime_o use_v for_o such_o schism_n only_o and_o hence_o lucifer_n calaritanus_n and_o the_o novatian_o and_o many_o other_o be_v call_v heretic_n and_o sometime_o use_v more_o cautelous_o in_o a_o narrow_a sense_n for_o those_o only_a that_o deny_v some_o essential_a article_n of_o faith_n or_o practice_n and_o sometime_o in_o a_o yet_o narrow_a sense_n for_o those_o only_a that_o upon_o such_o a_o denial_n of_o some_o essential_a point_n do_v gather_v into_o a_o separate_a society_n to_o maintain_v their_o error_n and_o oppugn_v the_o truth_n and_o according_a to_o these_o various_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n horesie_n and_o heretic_n we_o must_v conclude_v that_o a_o heretic_n may_v or_o may_v not_o be_v save_v and_o be_v or_o be_v not_o within_o the_o universal_a church_n which_o w._n 1_n do_v deceitful_o confound_v of_o which_o i_o have_v say_v more_o in_o the_o end_n and_o show_v you_o by_o a_o instance_n of_o philastrius_n how_o mischievous_a it_o be_v to_o abuse_v the_o name_n of_o heresy_n against_o every_o different_a opinion_n of_o true_a christian_n and_o so_o to_o make_v heretic_n of_o all_o believer_n in_o the_o world_n chap._n iii_o what_o mean_v you_o by_o the_o word_n pope_n w._n j._n by_o pope_n i_o mean_v st._n peter_n or_o any_o of_o his_o lawful_a successor_n in_o the_o see_v of_o 1_o rome_n have_v authority_n by_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n to_o govern_v all_o particular_a church_n next_o under_o christ._n r._n b._n i_o be_o never_o the_o near_o know_v the_o pope_n by_o this_o till_o i_o know_v how_o st._n peter_n successor_n may_v be_v know_v to_o i_o q._n 1._o what_o personal_a qualification_n be_v necessary_a ad_fw-la esse_fw-la w._n j._n such_o as_o be_v necessary_a ad_fw-la esse_fw-la of_o other_o bishop_n which_o i_o suppose_v you_o know_v r._n b._n if_o so_o than_o all_o those_o be_v no_o pope_n that_o be_v heretic_n or_o deny_v essential_a point_n of_o faith_n w._n j._n it_o be_v true_a they_o be_v no_o pope_n while_o
formal_a heretic_n if_o any_o such_o be_v r._n b._n as_o john_n 22_o 23_o eugenius_n four_o etc._n etc._n w._n j._n prove_v that_o r._n b._n the_o article_n bring_v against_o they_o and_o the_o judgement_n thereupon_o be_v a_o proof_n if_o any_o thing_n may_v be_v call_v a_o proof_n viz._n in_o the_o council_n at_o rome_n against_o john_n in_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n against_o divers_a at_o basil_n against_o eugenius_n and_o other_o much_o elder_n against_o honorius_n etc._n etc._n be_v a_o general_n council_n no_o proof_n i_o add_v that_o so_o they_o be_v no_o christian_n and_o he_o answer_v prove_v that_o history_n to_o which_o i_o say_v general_a council_n be_v your_o catholic_n church_n representative_a and_o those_o charge_v these_o pope_n with_o heresy_n and_o infidelity_n if_o you_o be_v so_o frontless_a as_o to_o deny_v it_o i_o will_v not_o therefore_o tire_v the_o reader_n with_o transcribe_v council_n as_o oft_o as_o you_o can_v say_v prove_v it_o i_o add_v and_o all_o those_o that_o want_v the_o necessary_a ability_n to_o the_o essential_o of_o their_o work_n he_o say_v prove_v that_o there_o be_v such_o pope_n i_o answer_v that_o you_o have_v have_v child_n pope_n and_o some_o that_o be_v illiterate_a and_o ignorant_a i_o have_v oft_o prove_v by_o the_o express_a testimony_n of_o your_o own_o historian_n how_o oft_o must_v i_o repeat_v they_o i_o add_v that_o therefore_o their_o church_n have_v oft_o be_v headless_a and_o the_o succession_n interrupt_v council_n have_v thus_o censure_v many_o pope_n w._n j._n when_o you_o have_v prove_v the_o precedent_n prove_v that_o r._n b._n reader_n be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o papacy_n in_o a_o desperate_a case_n if_o arm_n uphold_v it_o not_o when_o their_o champion_n have_v no_o more_o to_o say_v for_o the_o very_a successive_a be_v of_o the_o pope_n but_o to_o bid_v i_o prove_v that_o which_o all_o man_n that_o read_v they_o know_v be_v common_o and_o copious_o assert_v by_o their_o council_n and_o historian_n how_o oft_o have_v i_o cite_v their_o platina_n werverus_fw-la yea_o baro●…us_n binnius_n genebrard_n their_o great_a flatterer_n tell_v we_o that_o some_o be_v child_n and_o some_o illiterate_a and_o fifty_o together_o be_v not_o apostolical_a but_o apostatical_a etc._n etc._n w._n i._o prove_v that_o they_o be_v lawful_a council_n which_o so_o censure_v any_o pope_n which_o we_o admit_v as_o true_a and_o lawful_a r._n b._n alas_o poor_a man_n be_v you_o drive_v to_o that_o 1._o if_o you_o have_v the_o face_n to_o deny_v those_o to_o be_v lawful_a council_n that_o censure_v honorius_n the_o two_o john_n eugenius_n etc._n etc._n we_o may_v as_o well_o and_o a_o little_a better_o use_v the_o same_o liberty_n and_o question_n whether_o that_o of_o trent_n florence_n lateran_n etc._n etc._n be_v lawful_a 2._o may_v not_o the_o world_n see_v now_o what_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o your_o faith_n and_o the_o validity_n of_o your_o authority_n and_o tradition_n even_o your_o own_o will_n general_a council_n tell_v you_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o tradition_n of_o your_o forefather_n if_o you_o like_v they_o but_o if_o the_o pope_n dislike_v they_o they_o be_v no_o lawful_a council_n and_o their_o testimony_n null_a the_o sum_n be_v whatever_o council_n say_v the_o pope_n shall_v never_o be_v prove_v a_o heretic_n or_o infidel_n till_o he_o will_v say_v that_o he_o be_v one_o himself_o and_o will_v subscribe_v as_o marcellinus_n do_v to_o his_o own_o condemnation_n or_o with_o liberius_n confess_v his_o fault_n 3._o and_o have_v not_o these_o man_n a_o notable_a advantage_n to_o proselyte_n lady_n and_o illiterate_a person_n when_o if_o general_a council_n damn_v their_o pope_n it_o be_v but_o bid_v they_o prove_v those_o to_o have_v be_v lawful_a council_n and_o though_o i_o can_v prove_v to_o they_o that_o even_o their_o own_o pope_n have_v affirm_v they_o lawful_a yet_o few_o woman_n be_v so_o far_o skill_v in_o history_n and_o so_o they_o must_v yield_v to_o every_o impudent_a deceiver_n and_o when_o i_o have_v prove_v all_o it_o be_v but_o as_o bellarmine_n fetch_v a_o denial_n out_o of_o the_o word_n conciliariter_fw-la against_o the_o approbation_n of_o martin_n 5._o 4._o but_o be_v this_o enough_o for_o you_o what_o if_o none_o be_v lawful_a council_n that_o displease_v the_o pope_n be_v they_o therefore_o no_o competent_a witness_n of_o a_o matter_n of_o fact_n in_o the_o it_o mouth_n of_o two_o or_o three_o witness_n shall_v every_o word_n be_v establish_v and_o be_v not_o so_o many_o hundred_o bishop_n and_o other_o clerk_n as_o be_v at_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n constance_n pisa_n etc._n etc._n competent_a witness_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v a_o heretic_n simone_a murderer_n etc._n etc._n have_v the_o pope_n but_o consent_v these_o council_n have_v be_v the_o catholic_n church_n and_o infallible_a and_o may_v they_o not_o be_v credible_a witness_n against_o he_o till_o he_o consent_n how_o shall_v we_o believe_v they_o when_o they_o tell_v we_o what_o be_v hold_v and_o do_v in_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n a_o thousand_o or_o fourteen_o hundred_o year_n ago_o if_o after_o examination_n of_o witness_n we_o may_v not_o believe_v they_o concern_v one_o man_n one_o public_a sinner_n in_o their_o own_o time_n and_o know_v to_o many_o of_o themselves_o what_o then_o will_v the_o testimony_n of_o a_o historian_n or_o a_o hundred_o historian_n signify_v if_o the_o testimony_n of_o many_o hundred_o bishop_n congregate_v and_o deliberate_o examine_v consult_v and_o sentence_v be_v false_a r._n b._n i_o next_o ask_v q._n 2._o where_o and_o how_o must_v this_o institution_n of_o christ_n of_o the_o papacy_n 2._o be_v find_v w._n j._n in_o the_o reveal_v word_n of_o god_n write_v or_o unwritten_a r._n b._n 1._o remember_v reader_n that_o even_o now_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o church-governor_n be_v know_v without_o revelation_n else_o god_n have_v make_v a_o imprudent_a government_n he_o can_v not_o mean_v that_o they_o be_v know_v to_o be_v man_n but_o governor_n distinct_a from_o usurper_n or_o else_o he_o have_v speak_v nonsense_n or_o impertinent_o and_o yet_o now_o it_o be_v in_o the_o reveal_v word_n of_o god_n 2._o i_o answer_v that_o they_o never_o give_v the_o world_n assurance_n how_o to_o know_v the_o measure_n of_o their_o unwritten_a word_n nor_o where_o to_o find_v it_o so_o as_o to_o know_v what_o it_o be_v w._n j._n we_o say_v we_o have_v r._n b._n just_o as_o now_o you_o do_v to_o i_o if_o that_o word_n of_o god_n be_v still_o unwritten_a and_o neither_o to_o be_v find_v in_o your_o council_n nor_o any_o of_o your_o book_n i_o challenge_v all_o the_o reason_n in_o the_o world_n to_o tell_v we_o where_o we_o may_v certain_o come_v to_o know_v what_o it_o be_v and_o when_o we_o have_v all_o especial_o when_o so_o great_a council_n as_o ariminum_n ephes._n 2_o constance_z and_o basil_n may_v be_v deceive_v in_o your_o very_a fundamental_o of_o authority_n in_o matter_n of_o fact_n so_o near_o at_o hand_n r._n b._n till_o you_o prove_v christ_n institution_n which_o you_o have_v neu●…_n do_v you_o free_v we_o from_o believe_v in_o the_o pope_n w._n j._n all_o be_v free_a from_o believe_v in_o the_o pope_n we_o believe_v in_o god_n but_o not_o in_o the_o pope_n who_o of_o we_o ever_o charge_v you_o to_o do_v so_o r._n b._n even_o they_o that_o charge_v we_o to_o trust_v our_o very_a salvation_n upon_o his_o infallibility_n veracity_n or_o authority_n as_o from_o which_o only_a with_o his_o council_n we_o must_v know_v what_o be_v god_n word_n and_o what_o the_o meaning_n of_o it_o what_o be_v it_o to_o believe_v in_o but_o to_o believe_v his_o authority_n and_o veracity_n and_o trust_v upon_o it_o but_o we_o thank_v you_o for_o discharge_v we_o from_o believe_v in_o the_o pope_n but_o i_o doubt_v when_o we_o be_v in_o your_o power_n you_o will_v call_v we_o to_o a_o after-reckoning_n and_o burn_v we_o for_o not_o believe_v on_o he_o when_o you_o acquit_v we_o from_o believe_v in_o he_o so_o much_o of_o your_o faith_n do_v lie_v on_o a_o letter_n r._n b._n quest._n 3._o will_v any_o one_o election_n prove_v he_o to_o be_v pope_n or_o who_o must_v elect_v he_o 3_o ☞_o ad_fw-la esse_fw-la w._n j._n such_o as_o by_o approve_a custom_n be_v esteem_v by_o those_o to_o who_o it_o belong_v fit_a for_o that_o charge_n and_o with_o who_o election_n the_o church_n be_v satisfy_v r._n b._n now_o we_o come_v to_o their_o desperation_n never_o be_v man_n put_v to_o more_o open_a confusion_n in_o the_o very_a essence_n of_o their_o cause_n something_o must_v be_v say_v but_o they_o know_v not_o what_o i_o note_v here_o that_o if_o no_o election_n or_o any_o one_o election_n will_v serve_v turn_n the_o scholar_n
no_o man_n can_v say_v that_o the_o common_a consent_n of_o the_o people_n be_v always_o for_o he_o that_o carry_v it_o at_o last_o as_o right_v but_o if_o you_o mean_v as_o you_o seem_v that_o the_o universal_a or_o common_a consent_n of_o the_o people_n be_v the_o determine_a cause_n that_o must_v qualify_v the_o person_n for_o the_o power_n then_o either_o you_o mean_v a_o antecedent_n or_o a_o consequent_a consent_n if_o antecedent_n that_o be_v election_n which_o you_o say_v may_v vary_v if_o consequent_a it_o can_v not_o cause_v that_o which_o be_v cause_v before_o and_o it_o be_v not_o true_a that_o the_o consequent_a consent_n of_o the_o most_o of_o the_o people_n deprive_v the_o king_n of_o his_o power_n or_o prove_v it_o to_o be_v in_o a_o usurper_n 3._o but_o see_v you_o here_o also_o say_v that_o consecration_n be_v not_o absolute_o necessary_a nor_o election_n by_o any_o one_o sort_n or_o way_n but_o may_v be_v vary_v as_o time_n vary_v you_o have_v make_v either_o any_o man_n a_o bishop_n that_o any_o man_n will_v choose_v or_o you_o have_v make_v no_o man_n a_o bishop_n for_o want_v of_o a_o determine_a application_n or_o no_o man_n can_v know_v himself_o or_o be_v know_v to_o be_v a_o bishop_n if_o the_o question_n be_v who_o be_v the_o true_a husband_n of_o such_o a_o woman_n and_o you_o shall_v say_v that_o her_o own_o antecedent_n consent_n or_o election_n be_v not_o necessary_a but_o without_o it_o sometime_o the_o king_n election_n sometime_o the_o minister_n sometime_o the_o parent_n may_v serve_v and_o matrimonial_a celebration_n be_v not_o necessary_a it_o will_v follow_v that_o the_o woman_n may_v have_v a_o husband_n against_o her_o will_n and_o before_o she_o consent_v and_o she_o may_v have_v many_o or_o can_v never_o know_v which_o be_v he_o for_o the_o king_n may_v choose_v she_o one_o and_o the_o priest_n another_o and_o the_o parent_n a_o three_o so_o here_o 4._o and_o if_o his_o consecration_n be_v not_o necessary_a to_o episcopacy_n how_o will_v you_o prove_v ordination_n necessary_a to_o the_o priesthood_n here_o i_o note_v r._n b._n that_o he_o resolve_v the_o mystery_n of_o their_o succession_n and_o mission_n into_o popular_a consent_n 5._o to_o this_o w._n i._o say_v that_o he_o mean_v it_o only_o as_o the_o mean_n of_o know_v it_o ans._n but_o i_o inquire_v of_o the_o cause_n or_o evidence_n by_o which_o a_o bishop_n may_v be_v know_v from_o a_o usurper_n what_o it_o be_v that_o make_v he_o a_o bishop_n as_o i_o will_v know_v a_o man_n from_o a_o brute_n a_o judge_n a_o physician_n a_o merchant_n from_o other_o man_n but_o he_o dare_v not_o come_v to_o this_o because_o guilt_n make_v they_o conscious_a of_o their_o own_o defect_n but_o w._n i._n say_v p._n 50_o it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o some_o generality_n of_o election_n be_v determine_v jure_fw-la divino_fw-la ans._n let_v they_o be_v such_o that_o i_o may_v know_v a_o bishop_n from_o a_o usurper_n by_o and_o it_o be_v enough_o w._n j._n as_o that_o it_o he_o do_v by_o christian_n by_o such_o as_o be_v capable_a to_o know_v who_o be_v a_o fit_a person_n for_o the_o 6._o office_n choose_v free_o occord_v to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n the_o further_a determination_n be_v leave_v to_o the_o church_n etc._n etc._n r._n b._n worse_o still_o 1._o if_o the_o man_n of_o york_n choose_v a_o bishop_n of_o london_n or_o several_a party_n choose_v ten_o bishop_n here_o they_o be_v all_o choose_v by_o christian_n but_o that_o be_v not_o enough_o what_o if_o ten_o party_n choose_v ten_o pope_n ten_o king_n ten_o bishop_n the_o christianity_n of_o the_o chooser_n will_v not_o prove_v they_o all_o authorize_v 2._o nor_o will_v the_o chooser_n capacity_n of_o know_v the_o capable_a prove_v it_o three_o or_o four_o very_a wise_a man_n may_v best_o know_v who_o be_v capable_a to_o be_v a_o judge_n a_o bishop_n a_o husband_n a_o tutor_n a_o physician_n etc._n etc._n and_o yet_o if_o they_o shall_v choose_v all_o the_o judge_n bishop_n husband_n etc._n etc._n in_o the_o land_n the_o person_n choose_v by_o they_o will_v be_v never_o the_o more_o such_o than_o the_o unchosen_a 3._o but_o be_v conscious_a that_o you_o have_v say_v nothing_o you_o put_v in_o these_o word_n according_a to_o the_o 7._o law_n of_o god_n but_o the_o question_n be_v how_o shall_v i_o know_v what_o make_v a_o true_a bishop_n according_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o you_o skilful_o tell_v i_o he_o must_v be_v choose_v by_o know_v christian_n according_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n he_o that_o be_v not_o satisfy_v by_o you_o with_o such_o talk_n let_v he_o be_v unsatisfied_a r._n b._n i_o here_o note_v again_o that_o by_o his_o way_n none_o of_o our_o church_n be_v disable_v from_o the_o plea_n of_o a_o continue_a succession_n for_o want_v of_o episcopal_a consecration_n ordination_n or_o due_a election_n 2._o but_o that_o we_o can_v know_v their_o bishop_n to_o be_v true_a bishop_n because_o we_o can_v know_v that_o they_o have_v common_a consent_n he_o answer_v w._n j._n no_o man_n argue_v you_o of_o the_o want_n of_o succession_n in_o your_o respective_a see_v because_o you_o want_v episcopal_a consecration_n but_o because_o you_o want_v episcopal_a election_n confirmation_n vocation_n mission_n 8._o jurisdiction_n for_o your_o first_o bishop_n in_o queen_n elizabeth_n time_n and_o the_o same_o be_v of_o your_o minister_n of_o parish_n be_v intrude_v by_o secular_a power_n the_o capitula_fw-la have_v the_o present_a power_n of_o elect_v the_o bishop_n vid._n caet_fw-la r._n b._n 1._o it_o be_v well_o we_o be_v now_o quite_o rid_v of_o the_o old_a cavil_n of_o the_o nagshead_n consecration_n why_o be_v not_o this_o confess_v soon_o do_v you_o well_o to_o abuse_v the_o people_n so_o long_o 2._o i_o think_v we_o have_v nothing_o to_o have_v prove_v but_o due_a qualification_n due_a election_n or_o consent_n and_o due_a ordination_n or_o consecration_n but_o here_o now_o come_v in_o i_o know_v not_o what_o and_o how_o much_o more_o confirmation_n vocation_n mission_n jurisdiction_n all_o hard_a word_n have_v i_o put_v he_o but_o to_o have_v tell_v we_o the_o meaning_n of_o these_o also_o what_o work_n shall_v i_o have_v make_v he_o 1._o what_o be_v confirmation_n without_o which_o qualification_n election_n and_o ordination_n make_v not_o a_o true_a minister_n or_o bishop_n o_o that_o we_o know_v it_o 2._o what_o be_v vocation_n beside_o the_o three_o aforesaid_a and_o which_o be_v necessary_a ad_fw-la esse_fw-la 3._o and_o what_o be_v mission_n beside_o those_o three_o which_o be_v also_o so_o necessary_a 4._o and_o what_o mean_v he_o by_o jurisdiction_n that_o be_v want_v be_v it_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o collator_n or_o of_o the_o receiver_n not_o the_o former_a for_o we_o never_o know_v that_o god_n give_v any_o jurisdiction_n to_o the_o clergy_n but_o the_o pastoral_n power_n of_o guide_v the_o church_n by_o the_o word_n and_o key_n which_o be_v the_o work_n of_o their_o own_o office_n and_o the_o office_n of_o the_o ordainer_n be_v ●…o_o ordain_v and_o if_o he_o have_v power_n to_o ordain_v or_o consecrate_v he_o have_v that_o jurisdiction_n which_o consist_v of_o that_o power_n if_o it_o be_v the_o receiver_n jurisdiction_n that_o he_o mean_v that_o be_v the_o same_o contradiction_n for_o to_o ordain_v one_o to_o the_o pastoral_n office_n be_v to_o give_v he_o all_o the_o jurisdiction_n which_o be_v part_n of_o that_o office_n and_o for_o any_o other_o jurisdiction_n we_o wish_v prince_n will_v keep_v it_o both_o from_o the_o ordainer_n and_o the_o ordain_v but_o he_o say_v that_o our_o bishop_n want_v episcopal_a election_n be_v it_o come_v to_o that_o and_o yet_o the_o way_n of_o election_n all_o this_o while_n make_v so_o indifferent_a what_o be_v episcop●…l_a election_n not_o a_o election_n by_o bishop_n that_o you_o affirm_v not_o not_o a_o election_n to_o be_v bishop_n that_o you_o deny_v they_o not_o it_o be_v therefore_o such_o a_o election_n as_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o bishop_n and_o what_o be_v that_o why_o all_o that_o we_o have_v be_v able_a to_o extort_v from_o you_o be_v that_o it_o be_v do_v by_o christian_n capable_a to_o know_v fit_a person_n choose_v free_o according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o what_o it_o be_v that_o be_v according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o what_o measure_n of_o consonancy_n to_o the_o word_n and_o in_o what_o point_n be_v necessary_a ad_fw-la esse_fw-la you_o dare_v never_o tell_v we_o and_o we_o say_v that_o our_o bishop_n be_v choose_v by_o christian_n capable_a of_o know_v fit_a person_n i_o confess_v that_o it_o be_v my_o own_o judgement_n that_o they_o shall_v have_v the_o choice_n or_o consent_n of_o the_o people_n who_o they_o be_v to_o oversee_v and_o
of_o the_o presbyter_n where_o there_o be_v any_o under_o they_o and_o so_o think_v your_o own_o bishop_n for_o above_o 600_o year_n even_o when_o gregory_n one_a write_v his_o epistle_n but_o if_o you_o have_v assert_v that_o it_o will_v do_v more_o to_o unpope_n and_o unbishop_n your_o church_n than_o to_o disprove_v we_o but_o he_o say_v that_o the_o capitula_fw-la have_v the_o power_n of_o elect_a bishop_n and_o of_o constitute_v parish-priest_n in_o such_o place_n as_o want_v they_o ans._n 1._o suppose_v they_o have_v you_o say_v no_o particular_a elector_n act_n be_v necessary_a ad_fw-la esse_fw-la and_o why_o they_o 2._o but_o quo_fw-la jure_fw-la by_o what_o right_n can_v one_o dean_n and_o chapter_n of_o a_o city_n elect_v a_o overseer_n of_o many_o hundred_o parish-priest_n and_o many_o score_n or_o hundred_o thousand_o soul_n without_o their_o consent_n you_o dare_v not_o say_v that_o god_n give_v they_o that_o power_n and_o if_o man_n do_v it_o what_o man_n be_v they_o if_o you_o say_v that_o they_o be_v man_n that_o have_v more_o power_n in_o england_n than_o the_o king_n parliament_n and_o the_o consent_a people_n you_o must_v prove_v it_o if_o you_o lay_v it_o on_o any_o foreign_a power_n pope_n and_o council_n we_o will_v deny_v their_o power_n here_o and_o herein_o what_o man_n do_v man_n may_v undo_v 3._o but_o indeed_o your_o mere_a capitular_a election_n be_v null_a and_o contrary_a to_o god_n word_n and_o the_o ancient_a custom_n of_o the_o church_n by_o god_n word_n the_o consent_n of_o the_o flock_n and_o of_o the_o ordainer_n and_o of_o the_o ordain_v make_v a_o pastor_n bishop_n or_o presbyter_n by_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o empire_n sometime_o the_o great_a neighbour-bishop_n assume_v the_o power_n and_o sometime_o council_n overtop_v they_o all_o and_o undo_v what_o they_o do_v and_o sometime_o the_o emperor_n put_v in_o and_o out_o as_o please_v they_o as_o solomon_n put_v out_o abiathar_n but_o always_o the_o people_n election_n or_o acceptance_n be_v necessary_a for_o instance_n when_o gregory_n nazianzen_n have_v confute_v the_o macedonian_n and_o arrian_n and_o increase_v the_o church_n at_o constantinople_n though_o the_o arrian_n bishop_n since_o valens_n time_n keep_v the_o great_a church_n gregory_n have_v a_o little_a one_o and_o be_v choose_v their_o bishop_n by_o the_o orthodox_n people_n alone_o this_o be_v his_o first_o title_n after_o that_o peter_z bishop_n of_o alexandria_n make_v he_o bishop_n quantum_fw-la in_o se_fw-la or_o confirm_v he_o this_o be_v his_o additional_a title_n after_o this_o the_o same_z peter_z bribe_v by_o money_n without_o recall_v his_o former_a grant_n make_v maximus_n a_o right_n seeker_n of_o a_o bishopric_n as_o the_o world_n have_v since_o go_v bishop_n in_o his_o stead_n the_o people_n refuse_v the_o change_n and_o retain_v gregory_n afterwards_o maximus_n get_v both_o peter_n and_o the_o egyptian_a bishop_n to_o make_v he_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n where_o be_v the_o pope_n all_o this_o while_n the_o people_n still_o keep_v close_o to_o gregory_n afterwards_o theodosius_n the_o emperor_n return_v from_o the_o west_n put_v gregory_n in_o possession_n of_o the_o great_a church_n and_o turn_v out_o the_o arrian_n and_o confirm_v he_o bishop_n after_o this_o miletius_n of_o antioch_n and_o a_o council_n at_o constantinople_n make_v gregory_n bishop_n after_o this_o more_o bishop_n come_v in_o to_o the_o council_n get_v the_o major_a vote_n and_o he_o discern_v that_o they_o be_v resolve_v to_o depose_v he_o depart_v request_v the_o emperor_n leave_n as_o see_v the_o doleful_a division_n and_o contentiousness_n of_o the_o bishop_n not_o otherwise_o to_o be_v quiet_v entreat_v the_o emperor_n to_o keep_v they_o in_o some_o unity_n and_o peace_n lest_o it_o shall_v disgrace_v and_o ruin_v the_o new_o reform_a church_n and_o the_o council_n judgement_n make_v nectarius_n bishop_n the_o pope_n in_o all_o this_o never_o mind_v by_o this_o one_o instance_n you_o may_v see_v how_o bishop_n be_v then_o make_v in_o the_o great_a place_n though_o in_o lesser_a the_o election_n of_o the_o people_n and_o presbyter_n and_o the_o ordination_n of_o three_o neighbour-bishop_n do_v suffice_v according_a to_o the_o ancient_a rule_n and_o custom_n but_o he_o say_v that_o the_o old_a bishop_n be_v live_v and_o not_o legal_o depose_v ans._n 1._o sub_fw-la judicelis_fw-la est_fw-la we_o say_v they_o be_v 2._o some_o desert_v 3._o a_o illegal_a removal_n of_o the_o former_a do_v not_o ever_o nullisie_a the_o title_n of_o the_o latter_a viz._n when_o the_o flock_n consent_v to_o the_o change_n etc._n etc._n else_o what_o seat_n be_v there_o that_o have_v not_o have_v their_o succession_n interrupt_v and_o corrupt_v but_o none_o more_o than_o rome_n and_o constantinople_n and_o alexandria_n what_o poison_n fight_n unjust_a deposition_n and_o schism_n have_v make_v way_n for_o succession_n be_v your_o papacy_n therefore_o null_a but_o methinks_v it_o be_v a_o strange_a novelty_n that_o he_o make_v the_o capitula_fw-la to_o have_v have_v the_o right_n of_o choose_v not_o only_o the_o bishop_n but_o all_o the_o parish-priest_n to_o say_v nothing_o of_o the_o patron_n or_o the_o 9_o prince_n power_n which_o i_o think_v be_v as_o good_a as_o the_o chapter_n who_o know_v not_o that_o the_o bishop_n and_o the_o people_n do_v always_o choose_v the_o presbyter_n and_o not_o the_o chapter_n but_o he_o say_v that_o they_o be_v intrude_v by_o seculor_n power_n ans._n and_o be_v not_o your_o pope_n so_o ordinary_o till_o hildebrand_n get_v the_o better_a of_o the_o emperor_n but_o we_o have_v more_o than_o this_o r._n b._n your_o pope_n have_v not_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o most_o of_o the_o christian_n in_o the_o world_n nor_o for_o aught_o you_o or_o any_o man_n know_v of_o most_o in_o europe_n 10._o w._n j._n of_o what_o christian_n such_o as_o you_o and_o your_o associate_n be_v we_o regard_v that_o no_o more_o than_o do_v the_o ancient_a holy_a pope_n not_o to_o have_v bad_a the_o consent_n of_o the_o nestorian_n eutychian_o pelagian_n donatist_n arrian_n etc._n etc._n r._n b._n contempt_n of_o most_o of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v one_o of_o the_o great_a proof_n that_o you_o be_v all_o the_o church_n and_o do_v not_o the_o donatist_n say_v the_o same_o before_o you_o and_o what_o but_o the_o sword_n do_v make_v your_o cause_n to_o be_v better_a than_o they_o how_o easy_a be_v it_o for_o any_o sect_n to_o say_v we_o be_v the_o only_a church_n of_o christ_n and_o though_o most_o of_o the_o christian_a world_n be_v against_o we_o we_o regard_v they_o not_o reader_n mark_v the_o truth_n and_o c●…ndor_n of_o these_o man_n when_o we_o tell_v they_o that_o the_o greek_n armenian_n syrian_n jacobite_n georgian_n copty_v abassine_n be_v of_o the_o same_o church_n with_o we_o because_o they_o have_v the_o same_o head_n and_o the_o same_o essential_a faith_n the_o papist_n in_o their_o talk_n and_o write_n tell_v we_o that_o they_o be_v more_o of_o their_o mind_n than_o of_o we_o and_o that_o indeed_o they_o be_v not_o heretic_n but_o well-meaning-man_n but_o when_o we_o tell_v they_o then_o how_o two_o or_o three_o part_n of_o the_o church_n be_v against_o their_o pope_n pretend_v universal_a power_n they_o number_v all_o these_o then_o with_o heretic_n as_o not_o to_o be_v regard_v but_o abundance_n of_o their_o own_o writer_n yea_o such_o as_o have_v live_v among_o they_o at_o jerusalem_n and_o other_o part_n do_v vindicate_v the_o generality_n of_o these_o foreign_a christian_n from_o the_o charge_n of_o heresy_n 2._o but_o do_v not_o the_o world_n know_v that_o a_o man_n be_v suppose_v to_o be_v rightful_a pope_n as_o soon_o as_o the_o cardinal_n a_o upstart_n sort_n of_o thing_n have_v choose_v he_o before_o ever_o any_o of_o the_o people_n of_o europe_n even_a papist_n do_v consent_n but_o perhaps_o he_o will_v say_v that_o the_o people_n consent_n that_o these_o shall_v be_v the_o chooser_n sure_o they_o do_v not_o so_o till_o hildebrand_n day_n nor_o since_o any_o otherwise_o than_o by_o silence_n or_o nonresistance_n where_o they_o have_v no_o place_n to_o speak_v nor_o power_n to_o resist_v even_o as_o the_o countryman_n consent_v to_o the_o conquer_a army_n that_o oppress_v they_o r._n b._n it_o be_v few_o of_o your_o own_o people_n that_o know_v who_o be_v pope_n much_o less_o be_v call_v to_o consent_v till_o after_o 11._o he_o be_v settle_v in_o possession_n w._n j._n what_o then_o be_v not_o the_o same_o in_o all_o elective_a prince_n where_o the_o extent_n of_o their_o dominion_n be_v exceed_v large_a r._n b._n 1._o i_o confess_v when_o we_o have_v a_o elective_a king_n of_o all_o the_o world_n i_o have_v rather_o cardinal_n choose_v he_o at_o rome_n than_o all_o the_o world_n shall_v meet_v to_o choose_v he_o and_o if_o
rational_o rest_v in_o my_o yea_o or_o w._n i_n nay_o for_o how_o will_v either_o of_o those_o tell_v he_o what_o any_o book_n in_o question_n do_v contain_v it_o be_v the_o perusal_n of_o the_o book_n itself_o that_o must_v satisfy_v he_o but_o about_o the_o weight_n or_o consequence_n of_o any_o such_o citation_n we_o may_v help_v his_o satisfaction_n the_o church_n alas_o have_v not_o be_v so_o innocent_a since_o lording_n be_v its_o way_n of_o government_n as_o that_o all_o that_o we_o can_v find_v write_v or_o do_v by_o any_o great_a patriarch_n prelate_n yea_o or_o 2._o council_n shall_v pass_v with_o we_o for_o proof_n that_o it_o be_v well_o say_v or_o do_v nor_o can_v we_o take_v one_o prelate_n for_o all_o christ_n church_n no_o nor_o a_o synod_n o●…_n the_o clergy_n in_o the_o roman_a empire_n nor_o can_v we_o be_v so_o void_a of_o understanding_n as_o to_o read_v over_o the_o ancient_a writer_n and_o the_o council_n and_o not_o to_o know_v how_o much_o the_o major_a vote_n of_o the_o clergy_n still_o follow_v the_o emperor_n will_n and_o the_o bias_n of_o interest_n we_o can_v lie_v or_o believe_v evident_a lie_n on_o pretence_n of_o honour_v they_o he_o that_o read_v the_o story_n and_o do_v not_o find_v how_o much_o the_o will_n of_o constantine_n prevail_v in_o one_o council_n and_o the_o contrary_a will_n of_o constantius_n in_o many_o what_o the_o will_n of_o valens_n do_v with_o most_o in_o the_o e●…st_n and_o the_o will_n of_o jovian_a valentinian_n and_o other_o good_a prince_n do_v against_o it_o how_o far_o the_o will_n of_o theodosius_n go_v while_o he_o reigue_v against_o the_o arrian_n to_o heal_v what_o valens_n have_v do_v and_o how_o much_o the_o will_n of_o theodosius_n junior_a do_v for_o the_o eutythians_n and_o yet_o against_o the_o nestorian_n and_o how_o far_o the_o will_n of_o martian_a prevail_v against_o the_o say_a eutychian_o when_o he_o be_v dead_a how_o much_o even_o the_o usurper_n basiliscus_n in_o a_o year_n or_o two_o can_v do_v to_o strengthen_v the_o arrian_n and_o eutyohians_n and_o how_o quick_o zeno_n prevalency_n turn_v the_o scale_n i_o say_v he_o that_o do_v read_v on_o such_o history_n to_o the_o end_n and_o yet_o will_v think_v that_o the_o clergy_n have_v be_v still_o one_o unanimous_a body_n of_o the_o same_o mind_n and_o opinion_n in_o all_o thing_n and_o not_o turn_v up_o and_o down_o by_o prince_n power_n and_o their_o own_o interest_n and_o fear_n i_o leave_v such_o a_o reader_n as_o desperate_a and_o as_o one_o that_o will_v be_v deceive_v in_o despite_n of_o the_o clear_a evidence_n of_o truth_n he_o that_o do_v read_v these_o story_n and_o do_v not_o perceive_v the_o great_a corruption_n of_o the_o clergy_n when_o once_o their_o place_n have_v a_o bait_n of_o wealth_n and_o honour_n and_o dominion_n suitable_a to_o a_o 3_o proud_a worldly_a carnal_a mind_n and_o what_o a_o continual_a war_n there_o be_v among_o the_o clergy_n between_o a_o holy_a spiritual_a and_o a_o worldly_a proud_a domineer_a unconscionable_a party_n and_o how_o ordinary_o or_o oft_o the_o carnal_a worldly_a clergy_n have_v the_o major_a vote_n how_o the_o same_o e_fw-la g._n bishop_n at_o the_o council_n of_o ephes._n 2._o can_v yield_v to_o theodosius_n and_o dioscorus_n and_o condemn_v the_o just_a and_o at_o chalcedon_n go_v the_o contrary_a way_n and_o cry_v out_o omnes_fw-la peccavimus_fw-la and_o we_o do_v it_o for_o fear_n how_o the_o same_o council_n at_o constantine_n that_o confirm_v greg._n naz._n when_o some_o more_o be_v add_v and_o get_v the_o major_a vote_n resolve_v to_o depose_v he_o and_o cause_v he_o to_o depart_v how_o the_o same_o peter_n of_o alexandria_n athanasius_n successor_n that_o first_o make_v he_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n breviar_n for_o a_o sum_n of_o money_n put_v in_o maximus_n in_o his_o place_n without_o once_o hear_v he_o or_o give_v any_o reason_n or_o recalling_a his_o first_o letter_n and_o how_o the_o bribe_a egyptian_a bishop_n do_v concur_v how_o theophilus_n carry_v it_o with_o the_o egyptian_a monk_n and_o against_o origen_n and_o chrysostome_n and_o between_o theodosius_n and_o eugenius_n the_o usurper_n and_o how_o the_o synod_n carry_v it_o against_o chrysostome_n and_o how_o cyril_n first_o make_v himself_o a_o magistrate_n to_o use_v the_o sword_n at_o alexandria_n and_o what_o pass_v between_o theodoret_n johan._n antioch_n and_o he_o and_o how_o the_o bishop_n and_o their_o synod_n in_o ithacius_n time_n carry_v it_o against_o st._n martin_n and_o against_o the_o priscillianist_n and_o how_o all_o this_o while_n rome_n and_o constantinople_n set_v and_o keep_v the_o empire_n in_o a_o flame_n by_o strive_v which_o shall_v be_v the_o great_a and_o how_o the_o pope_n on_o such_o putid_v account_n do_v molest_v the_o african_a church_n in_o the_o day_n of_o augustine_n himself_o and_o their_o writer_n charge_v they_o with_o schism_n to_o this_o day_n i_o say_v he_o that_o can_v read_v abundance_n of_o such_o stuff_n as_o this_o and_o yet_o think_v that_o any_o one_o citation_n of_o the_o word_n of_o a_o prelate_n pope_n or_o council_n ●…is_n as_o valid_a as_o if_o it_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n let_v he_o go_v his_o own_o way_n for_o he_o be_v not_o for_o my_o company_n nay_o if_o they_o can_v prove_v as_o much_o of_o the_o pope_n universal_a episcopacy_n within_o the_o empire_n 4._o under_o the_o christian_a emperor_n as_o salm●…sius_n i_o think_v too_o liberal_o grant_v they_o the_o eccles._n suburbicar_n circa_fw-la finem_fw-la it_o be_v no_o more_o with_o i_o than_o to_o prove_v the_o power_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n or_o of_o an●…och_n in_o their_o assign_a patriarchates_n which_o alter_v at_o the_o pleasure_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o synod_n as_o the_o division_n make_v after_o between_o the_o bishop_n of_o antioch_n jerusalem_n and_o caesarea_n show_v and_o that_o which_o be_v give_v to_o constantinople_n from_o heraclea_n pontus_n and_o asia_n christianity_n be_v not_o unknown_a till_o council_n or_o alter_v as_o often_o as_o they_o make_v new_a decree_n 5._o and_o it_o be_v a_o great_a mistake_n of_o they_o that_o think_v that_o there_o be_v little_a of_o christianity_n save_v in_o the_o roman_a empire_n the_o apostle_n preach_v elsewhere_o and_o they_o preach_v not_o in_o vain_a there_o be_v church_n in_o ethiopia_n the_o indies_n persia_n parthia_n the_o outer_a armenia_n scythia_n britain_n and_o other_o part_n that_o be_v without_o the_o empire_n but_o we_o have_v no_o large_a or_o particular_a history_n of_o they_o partly_o because_o that_o they_o be_v not_o so_o much_o literate_a and_o give_v to_o write_v as_o the_o roman_n and_o the_o greek_n be_v and_o partly_o because_o they_o be_v in_o war_n with_o the_o empire_n or_o do_v not_o communicate_v by_o correspondence_n with_o they_o and_o partly_o because_o their_o book_n be_v not_o in_o any_o language_n which_o the_o greek_n or_o roman_n understand_v how_o long_o be_v it_o ere_o the_o empire_n have_v much_o acquaintance_n with_o the_o syriack_n or_o samaritan_n persian_a arabic_a or_o ethiopic_a version_n or_o book_n after_o they_o be_v extant_a and_o how_o few_o of_o the_o many_o book_n that_o by_o traveller_n be_v say_v to_o be_v in_o abassia_n armenia_n or_o syria_n be_v know_v to_o we_o to_o this_o day_n how_o little_o know_v we_o of_o the_o old_a christian_n of_o st._n thomas_n and_o those_o part_n and_o how_o full_a and_o satisfactory_a a_o testimony_n do_v alvarez_n profess_v that_o he_o see_v himself_o even_o a_o large_a stone_n with_o memorial_n inscription_n of_o it_o dig_v up_o that_o the_o christian_a religion_n have_v be_v in_o china_n when_o otherwise_o he_o can_v not_o hear_v of_o one_o word_n by_o tradition_n or_o history_n that_o can_v notify_v such_o a_o thing_n how_o little_o know_v we_o now_o of_o the_o case_n of_o nubia_n and_o tend●…_n while_o they_o be_v great_a christian_a kingdom_n how_o little_o know_v we_o at_o this_o day_n of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o armenian_n georgian_n mengr●…tians_n circassian_n etc._n etc._n how_o little_o be_v know_v of_o the_o great_a empire_n of_o abassia_n till_o the_o portugal_n open_v the_o way_n for_o oviedo_n and_o his_o companion_n the_o other_o day_n jacobus_n de_fw-fr vitriaco_n tell_v we_o of_o more_o christian_n in_o those_o part_n of_o the_o world_n than_o all_o the_o greek_n or_o latin_n when_o he_o be_v at_o jerusalem_n where_o he_o have_v notice_n of_o they_o brocardus_n that_o live_v there_o also_o tell_v we_o as_o of_o their_o great_a number_n so_o of_o their_o great_a piety_n be_v better_a man_n than_o the_o very_a religious_a of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o yet_o how_o little_a notice_n be_v there_o then_o of_o their_o write_n or_o they_o he_o say_v they_o be_v free_a from_o the_o heresy_n of_o nestorianism_n and_o eutychianism_n
church_n 6._o christ_n himself_o wash_v his_o apostle_n foot_n and_o teach_v they_o to_o do_v the_o like_a which_o be_v use_v in_o those_o hot_a country_n where_o it_o be_v a_o needful_a act_n of_o ministry_n but_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o essential_a to_o the_o church_n 7._o baptism_n from_o the_o beginning_n as_o institute_v by_o christ_n be_v administer_v by_o dip_v over_o head_n in_o water_n but_o you_o take_v not_o that_o to_o be_v essential_a to_o the_o church_n 8._o the_o lord_n day_n be_v holy_a observation_n as_o institute_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n have_v ever_o be_v in_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o many_o of_o your_o doctor_n do_v equal_a it_o with_o other_o holy_a day_n and_o make_v it_o not_o essential_a to_o the_o church_n 9_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n distinguish_v essential_o from_o integral_n and_o accident_n in_o their_o time_n therefore_o they_o be_v still_o to_o be_v distinguish_v and_o it_o be_v a_o strange_a society_n that_o have_v not_o ever_o have_v integral_n and_o accident_n christ_n institute_v baptism_n say_v he_o that_o believe_v and_o be_v baptize_v shall_v be_v save_v thus_o the_o essential_o yet_o he_o say_v teach_v they_o to_o observe_v all_o thing_n whatever_o i_o have_v command_v you_o but_o all_o those_o be_v not_o essential_o for_o christ_n himself_o distinguish_v tything_n mint_n annise_v and_o cummin_n from_o the_o great_a thing_n of_o the_o law_n and_o yet_o say_v these_o aught_o you_o to_o have_v do_v and_o st._n paul_n say_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v not_o meat_n and_o drink_n but_o righteousness_n and_o peace_n and_o joy_n in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n etc._n etc._n and_o yet_o more_o than_o these_o be_v then_o a_o duty_n all_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v do_v decent_o and_o in_o order_n and_o yet_o who_o ever_o say_v but_o you_o that_o all_o this_o be_v essential_a to_o the_o church_n christ_n by_o his_o apostle_n institute_v that_o collection_n for_o the_o poor_a shall_v be_v make_v on_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n yet_o be_v not_o that_o essential_a to_o the_o church_n 10._o affliction_n be_v accident_n of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o christ_n appointment_n and_o have_v be_v ever_o there_o and_o yet_o be_v not_o essential_a to_o it_o 11._o all_o the_o number_n of_o christian_n and_o the_o high_a degree_n of_o gift_n and_o grace_n have_v be_v of_o christ_n and_o ever_o in_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o essential_a to_o it_o that_o christian_n be_v just_a as_o many_o as_o they_o have_v be_v or_o of_o such_o measure_n of_o gift_n and_o grace_n for_o even_o perfection_n be_v a_o duty_n 12._o few_o of_o your_o own_o do_v think_v that_o extreme_a unction_n be_v essential_a to_o the_o church_n and_o that_o if_o it_o cease_v it_o will_v be_v no_o church_n the_o like_a may_v be_v say_v of_o many_o other_o thing_n but_o see_v how_o these_o man_n unchurch_n themselves_o for_o if_o this_o be_v true_a than_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n can_v be_v no_o true_a church_n for_o it_o have_v cast_v off_o that_o which_o they_o call_v essential_a be_v it_o 5._o but_o the_o cup_n in_o the_o lord_n supper_n and_o public_a prayer_n in_o a_o know_a tongue_n the_o change_n have_v unchurch_v they_o these_o consequent_n fall_v on_o they_o that_o will_v unchurch_n most_o of_o the_o church_n of_o christ._n but_o page_n 55_o 56._o he_o say_v that_o he_o do_v not_o say_v that_o every_o such_o thing_n must_v be_v necessary_o believe_v 6._o by_o every_o member_n no_o not_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n but_o to_o such_o only_a to_o who_o they_o be_v sufficient_o propound_v answ._n 1._o and_o yet_o these_o man_n tell_v our_o people_n to_o affright_v they_o that_o they_o can_v be_v save_v out_o of_o their_o church_n or_o in_o our_o religion_n and_o now_o it_o be_v not_o essential_a to_o believe_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n 2._o but_o who_o can_v ever_o know_v what_o will_v pass_v for_o a_o sufficient_a propound_v while_o twenty_o degree_n of_o man_n capacity_n make_v twenty_o degree_n of_o proposal_n respective_o sufficient_a what_o man_n of_o reason_n can_v believe_v that_o such_o self-confuting_a dispute_n as_o you_o be_v a_o sufficient_a proposal_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n and_o sure_o the_o christian_a empire_n of_o abassia_n than_o have_v no_o sufficient_a proposal_n when_o but_o late_o your_o emissary_n tell_v they_o that_o they_o never_o hear_v from_o the_o pope_n till_o now_o because_o he_o can_v not_o have_v access_n or_o send_v to_o they_o q._n whether_o that_o empire_n be_v true_a christian_n through_o so_o many_o age_n see_v they_o receive_v not_o the_o scripture_n on_o the_o authoritative_a proposal_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o papal_a church_n and_o yet_o confess_o be_v never_o bind_v to_o believe_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n 3._o by_o this_o account_n all_o christian_n essential_o differ_v from_o each_o other_o in_o their_o religion_n and_o christianity_n be_v a_o word_n of_o such_o monstrous_a ambiguity_n that_o it_o signify_v as_o many_o several_a religion_n as_o there_o be_v person_n in_o the_o world_n who_o divers_a capacity_n make_v diversity_n of_o proposal_n become_v necessary_a or_o sufficient_a to_o they_o but_o he_o say_v that_o these_o be_v all_o essential_a to_o the_o church_n though_o not_o to_o the_o several_a member_n more_o difficulty_n still_o 1._o how_o shall_v we_o ever_o know_v the_o church_n this_o way_n if_o the_o belief_n 7._o of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n be_v essential_a to_o some_o and_o only_o to_o some_o how_o many_o must_v they_o be_v that_o so_o believe_v will_v one_o serve_v or_o one_o thousand_o to_o make_v all_o the_o rest_n church-member_n that_o believe_v it_o not_o or_o how_o many_o will_v this_o leven_n extend_v to_o why_o then_o may_v not_o the_o belief_n of_o italy_n prove_v all_o the_o world_n to_o be_v the_o church_n 2._o how_o come_v another_o man_n belief_n to_o be_v of_o such_o save_a use_n to_o other_o if_o you_o say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o his_o belief_n but_o their_o own_o who_o believe_v not_o than_o all_o the_o world_n be_v of_o your_o church_n that_o want_v sufficient_a proposal_n and_o unbeliever_n be_v christian_n or_o of_o the_o christian_a church_n so_o be_v it_o they_o never_o hear_v of_o christ_n and_o so_o all_o the_o unknown_a world_n and_o american_n and_o most_o of_o the_o heathen_n be_v of_o your_o christian_a church_n and_o why_o may_v not_o the_o pope_n be_v save_v then_o without_o believe_v his_o own_o supremacy_n i_o very_o think_v that_o there_o be_v not_o one_o pope_n of_o twenty_o that_o believe_v his_o own_o infallibility_n doubtless_o some_o illiterate_a or_o ill-bred_a pope_n have_v have_v but_o very_o defective_a proposal_n of_o their_o own_o supremacy_n it_o be_v rather_o affirm_v by_o flattery_n than_o ever_o prove_v to_o they_o pag._n 57_o have_v first_o call_v for_o sense_n in_o my_o word_n because_o the_o printer_n have_v put_v as_o for_o be_v he_o turn_v his_o former_a assertion_n whatever_o have_v be_v ever_o in_o the_o church_n by_o christ_n institution_n 8._o be_v essential_a to_o it_o into_o another_o because_o christ_n have_v institute_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v for_o ever_o in_o the_o church_n it_o be_v essential_a and_o this_o yet_o more_o plain_o shame_v the_o asserte_a than_o the_o former_a for_o no_o man_n can_v deny_v but_o that_o christ_n have_v institute_v 1._o that_o every_o word_n of_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n shall_v be_v ever_o after_o its_o existence_n in_o the_o church_n 2._o and_o that_o no_o minister_n shall_v preach_v any_o thing_n but_o truth_n in_o the_o church_n 3._o and_o that_o no_o man_n shall_v commit_v any_o sin_n at_o all_o 4._o and_o that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v deliver_v in_o both_o kind_n in_o remembrance_n of_o christ_n till_o he_o come_v etc._n etc._n and_o yet_o sure_a all_o this_o be_v not_o essential_a to_o the_o church_n pag_n 58._o he_o will_v persuade_v i_o that_o i_o miscite_fw-la fr._n sta._n clara_n and_o that_o he_o say_v not_o that_o infidel_n may_v be_v save_v but_o only_o those_o that_o have_v not_o a_o explicit_a faith_n in_o christ_n through_o invincible_a ignorance_n and_o that_o he_o say_v not_o that_o it_o be_v most_o of_o the_o doctor_n opinion_n nor_o that_o any_o may_v be_v save_v who_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o my_o friend_n will_v be_v sorry_a to_o see_v i_o so_o defective_a in_o my_o citation_n and_o he_o hope_v i_o will_v mend_v it_o in_o the_o next_o ans._n that_o i_o will_v if_o plain_a word_n transcribe_v be_v any_o amend_v but_o i_o can_v amend_v your_o deceitful_a deal_n 1._o i_o do_v not_o say_v that_o sta._n clara_n say_v they_o may_v be_v save_v out_o of_o the_o church_n but_o that_o such_o be_v in_o your_o church_n and_o so_o may_v be_v save_v who_o indeed_o be_v no_o
on_o the_o 6_o of_o january_n till_o after_o the_o middle_n of_o chrysostom_n time_n and_o so_o in_o the_o present_a case_n have_v it_o be_v as_o ancient_a as_o they_o pretend_v it_o be_v not_o universal_a 2._o but_o he_o say_v that_o at_o least_o as_o patriarch_n of_o the_o west_n by_o the_o church_n grant_v they_o be_v in_o full_a quiet_a possession_n of_o that_o right_n or_o power_n which_o we_o confess_v be_v lawful_a ans._n no_o such_o matter_n we_o make_v no_o such_o confession_n those_o protestant_n who_o think_v that_o the_o superiority_n of_o patriarch_n be_v lawful_a do_v hold_v that_o it_o be_v by_o humane_a law_n and_o that_o if_o any_o such_o law_n be_v make_v by_o that_o which_o you_o call_v the_o church_n that_o be_v by_o council_n it_o be_v by_o such_o council_n as_o in_o such_o matter_n receive_v their_o power_n from_o the_o emperor_n without_o which_o they_o may_v not_o set_v up_o one_o city_n above_o another_o nor_o distribute_v province_n and_o diocese_n and_o as_o be_v do_v and_o therefore_o that_o while_o the_o imperial_a law_n enforce_v they_o they_o have_v the_o law_n to_o bind_v subject_n to_o obey_v they_o but_o when_o any_o kingdom_n be_v cut_v off_o from_o the_o empire_n it_o be_v from_o under_o those_o law_n and_o under_o the_o law_n of_o their_o own_o prince_n and_o the_o former_a decree_n of_o council_n be_v no_o law_n to_o they_o any_o long_o though_o they_o may_v by_o voluntary_a contract_n still_o associate_v with_o foreign_a land_n so_o that_o such_o hold_v 1._o that_o while_o britain_n be_v under_o the_o roman_a empire_n they_o owe_v some_o respect_n or_o obedience_n to_o the_o pope_n as_o patriarch_n of_o the_o west_n as_o englishman_n do_v the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n 2._o that_o before_o and_o after_o they_o owe_v he_o no_o more_o obedience_n than_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rheims_n or_o arles_n 3._o that_o when_o the_o saxon_a king_n permit_v the_o first_o english_a bishop_n voluntary_o to_o subject_n themselves_o to_o the_o patriarch_n of_o rome_n they_o make_v themselves_o debtor_n of_o all_o lawful_a obedience_n which_o they_o promise_v 4._o that_o when_o the_o saxon_a and_o danish_a king_n command_v their_o subject_n such_o lawful_a obedience_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n they_o owe_v it_o he_o by_o the_o obligation_n of_o their_o sovereign_n law_n 5._o and_o when_o those_o law_n cease_v their_o obligation_n cease_v and_o when_o those_o law_n forbid_v it_o it_o become_v unlawful_a and_o so_o the_o roman_a patriarch_n have_v no_o power_n in_o england_n when_o the_o king_n and_o law_n do_v deny_v it_o he_o or_o cease_v to_o give_v it_o he_o this_o be_v the_o judgement_n of_o those_o protestant_n that_o think_v such_o patriarch_n lawful_a the_o other_o that_o think_v they_o a_o sinful_a usurpation_n think_v that_o they_o be_v never_o lawful_a yet_o he_o urge_v we_o with_o what_o conscience_n we_o cease_v to_o obey_v they_o pag._n 74._o he_o say_v prove_v that_o any_o church_n which_o now_o deny_v it_o have_v be_v always_o visible_a and_o 3_o i_o be_o satisfy_v whether_o that_o church_n always_o deny_v it_o or_o no._n ans._n this_o have_v some_o moderation_n in_o it_o 1._o there_o have_v no_o church_n but_o that_o of_o jerusalem_n be_v always_o visible_a from_o the_o begin_n of_o christianity_n for_o no_o other_o be_v at_o first_o existent_n 2._o and_o that_o be_v not_o visible_a from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n 3._o this_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n as_o it_o consist_v of_o the_o most_o christian_n there_o now_o deny_v your_o papal_a power_n 4._o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n antioch_n and_o abassia_n now_o deny_v it_o and_o have_v be_v always_o visible_a 5._o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n and_o many_o other_o of_o greek_n that_o now_o deny_v it_o have_v be_v always_o visible_a since_o paul_n time_n and_o constantinople_n since_o the_o first_o plant_n 6._o and_o i_o pray_v you_o note_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v not_o be_v always_o visible_a for_o it_o do_v not_o exist_v till_o some_o year_n after_o that_o at_o jerusalem_n yea_o note_n that_o you_o can_v pretend_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o universal_a bishop_n from_o the_o beginning_n for_o you_o confess_v peter_n be_v first_o bishop_n of_o antioch_n and_o all_o that_o while_n rome_n be_v not_o the_o mistress_n church_n and_o so_o if_o you_o shall_v have_v the_o supremacy_n it_o must_v be_v by_o a_o change_n from_o the_o first_o state_n though_o indeed_o peter_n himself_o never_o claim_v nor_o exercise_v any_o such_o thing_n much_o less_o do_v he_o ever_o leave_v it_o to_o a_o successor_n and_o least_o of_o all_o as_o fix_v to_o one_o city_n any_o more_o than_o st._n john_n power_n be_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n and_o indeed_o bellarmine_n himself_o dare_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o universal_a bishop_n may_v possible_o be_v remove_v from_o rome_n to_o some_o other_o place_n and_o then_o suppose_v it_o be_v to_o avignion_n or_o to_o constantinople_n where_o be_v st._n peter_n successor_n how_o must_v he_o be_v choose_v or_o how_o shall_v his_o power_n above_o other_o be_v know_v when_o all_o the_o old_a pretension_n fail_v pag._n 78._o till_o then_o there_o be_v nothing_o but_o vain_a word_n when_o i_o note_v that_o they_o that_o make_v 2._o christ_n corporal_o present_a in_o every_o church_n in_o the_o eucharist_n shall_v not_o say_v that_o the_o king_n of_o the_o church_n be_v absent_a he_o reply_v we_o dispute_v of_o a_o proper_a visible_a presence_n such_o as_o be_v not_o in_o the_o eucharist_n ans._n you_o affirm_v that_o christ_n be_v there_o corporal_o present_a under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o christ._n wine_n and_o that_o the_o bread_n which_o we_o see_v be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o no_o bread_n and_o yet_o that_o we_o see_v not_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n sure_o we_o see_v something_o or_o nothing_o and_o if_o it_o be_v something_o and_o not_o bread_n nor_o christ_n body_n what_o be_v it_o but_o suppose_v that_o it_o be_v not_o christ_n body_n which_o we_o see_v yet_o while_o the_o bread_n be_v turn_v into_o his_o body_n that_o which_o you_o do_v see_v be_v near_o to_o he_o than_o a_o king_n crown_n or_o clothing_n be_v to_o the_o king_n and_o yet_o if_o you_o see_v the_o king_n only_o in_o his_o clothes_n his_o ●…ace_n be_v veil_v will_v you_o say_v that_o he_o be_v not_o a_o visible_a king_n do_v clothing_n make_v king_n or_o the_o species_n of_o the_o consecrate_a bread_n make_v christ_n to_o become_v invisible_a 2._o do_v you_o not_o bow_v towards_o he_o on_o the_o altar_n do_v you_o not_o carry_v he_o in_o procession_n about_o the_o street_n and_o do_v you_o not_o constrain_v all_o that_o meet_v you_o to_o kneel_v down_o and_o adore_v sure_o you_o do_v not_o think_v he_o to_o be_v out_o of_o sight_n or_o hear_v or_o far_o off_o to_o who_o you_o pray_v and_o who_o you_o so_o honour_v as_o present_v as_o paul_n say_v to_o the_o jew_n god_n be_v not_o far_o from_o every_o one_o of_o we_o so_o that_o christ_n who_o be_v adorable_o present_a in_o his_o body_n on_o the_o altar_n and_o corporal_o present_a in_o every_o receiver_n hand_n and_o mouth_n sure_o have_v not_o yet_o forsake_v the_o earth_n so_o far_o as_o to_o be_v uncapable_a of_o constitute_v a_o visible_a kingdom_n without_o a_o pope_n pag._n 79._o i_o tell_v he_o that_o when_o they_o prove_v 1._o that_o christ_n be_v so_o absent_a from_o his_o church_n that_o there_o be_v need_n of_o a_o deputy_n to_o essentiate_v his_o kingdom_n and_o 2._o that_o the_o pope_n be_v so_o depute_a they_o will_v have_v do_v their_o work_n he_o reply_v i_o have_v prove_v that_o christ_n institute_v st._n peter_n and_o his_o successor_n to_o govern_v visible_o his_o whole_o universal_a church_n in_o all_o age_n ans._n wonderful_a when_o be_v it_o and_o where_o let_v the_o reader_n find_v any_o such_o thing_n in_o your_o writing_n for_o i_o can_v no_o not_o a_o word_n have_v that_o be_v do_v i_o have_v contradict_v you_o no_o long_o but_o if_o it_o be_v by_o a_o invisible_a proof_n that_o your_o visible_a head_n reign_v i_o can_v judge_v of_o it_o he_o next_o add_v i_o press_v you_o therefore_o once_o more_o to_o give_v a_o instance_n of_o something_o which_o have_v be_v ever_o in_o the_o visible_a church_n by_o christ_n institution_n and_o yet_o be_v accidental_a to_o the_o church_n ans._n 1._o if_o i_o have_v not_o give_v you_o such_o instance_n and_o reason_n also_o to_o prove_v that_o all_o that_o christ_n institute_v to_o continue_v be_v not_o essential_a let_v the_o reader_n say_v that_o i_o have_v fail_v you_o 2._o but_o if_o i_o have_v not_o what_o be_v it_o to_o your_o cause_n will_v it_o thence_o follow_v that_o
church_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n nor_o be_v rome_n itself_o so_o but_o ever_o since_o their_o beginning_n they_o have_v be_v visible_a sometime_o obey_v the_o pope_n and_o sometime_o reject_v he_o the_o abassine_n and_o several_a other_o extra-imperial_a church_n never_o obey_v he_o the_o most_o of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o empire_n the_o eastern_a and_o african_n sometime_o obey_v he_o as_o the_o chief_a in_o the_o empire_n by_o the_o law_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o sometime_o they_o cast_v he_o off_o when_o the_o eastern_a empire_n cast_v he_o off_o but_o they_o never_o obey_v he_o as_o the_o sovereign_a bishop_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n iii_o in_o the_o three_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n congregation_n as_o it_o signify_v the_o universal_a church_n i_o confess_v that_o i_o can_v show_v you_o no_o universal_a church_n now_o visible_a reject_v the_o pope_n for_o the_o universal_a leave_v out_o no_o part_n though_o a_o corrupt_a part_n and_o while_o papist_n own_v he_o i_o can_v say_v that_o the_o universal_a church_n disow_v he_o but_o i_o can_v prove_v 1._o that_o the_o primitive_a universal_a church_n never_o own_v any_o universal_a head_n or_o governor_n but_o christ_n and_o his_o twelve_o apostle_n who_o indefinite_a charge_n may_v be_v call_v universal_a 2._o that_o the_o universal_a church_n never_o own_v the_o roman_a universal_a sovereignty_n 3._o that_o the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o the_o church_n do_v not_o own_o it_o at_o this_o day_n and_o therefore_o if_o the_o whole_a may_v be_v denominate_v from_o the_o major_a part_n we_o may_v say_v that_o now_o the_o universal_a church_n disow_v he_o and_o now_o reader_n answer_v these_o like_a sophism_n and_o you_o have_v answer_v this_o man_n of_o art_n 1._o no_o congregation_n of_o christian_n have_v be_v perpetual_o visible_a but_o that_o which_o acknowledge_v the_o patriarch_n in_o the_o empire_n at_o least_o heretofore_o ergo_fw-la no_o other_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ._n answ._n 1._o but_o another_o be_v part_n and_o the_o best_a part_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ._n 2._o and_o none_o that_o do_v or_o ever_o do_v acknowledge_v those_o patriarch_n be_v the_o whole_a church_n 3._o and_o none_o of_o the_o church_n acknowledge_v they_o at_o first_o before_o they_o be_v erect_v so_o 2._o inst._n no_o congregation_n of_o christian_n have_v be_v perpetual_o visible_a but_o that_o which_o condemn_v the_o monothelite_n the_o nestorian_n the_o eutychian_o the_o audian_o the_o luciferian_o the_o quartodecimani_n etc._n etc._n ergo_fw-la no_o other_o be_v the_o true_a church_n answ._n 1._o part_v of_o the_o church_n condemn_v they_o and_o part_n never_o hear_v of_o they_o and_o before_o they_o rise_v none_o of_o the_o church_n condemn_v they_o so_o another_o instance_n be_v no_o congregation_n of_o christian_n have_v be_v perpetual_o visible_a but_o that_o which_o administer_v the_o eucharist_n only_o in_o one_o kind_n without_o the_o cup_n and_o which_o use_v public_a prayer_n in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n and_o which_o forbid_v the_o read_v the_o scripture_n translate_v without_o special_a licence_n etc._n etc._n ergo_fw-la no_o other_o be_v the_o true_a church_n answ._n 1._o only_o a_o corrupt_a part_n now_o do_v these_o the_o most_o discover_v it_o and_o none_o be_v guilty_a of_o it_o in_o many_o generation_n do_v there_o need_v any_o other_o answer_n to_o such_o palpable_a sophism_n his_o argument_n plain_o shall_v run_v thus_o no_o congregation_n of_o christian_n have_v be_v perpetual_o visible_a but_o that_o which_o now_o ow_v the_o traitorous_a usurpation_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o of_o lateran_n and_o part_n of_o who_o religion_n be_v for_o exterminate_v or_o burn_v all_o that_o will_v not_o renounce_v all_o belief_n of_o humane_a sense_n in_o believe_v transubstantiation_n and_o for_o cast_v out_o prince_n that_o execute_v not_o this_o and_o absolve_a subject_n from_o their_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n to_o they_o and_o which_o have_v corrupt_v the_o doctrine_n worship_n and_o government_n of_o christ_n ergo_fw-la no_o other_o be_v the_o true_a church_n answ._n a_o disease_a part_n of_o the_o church_n only_o be_v guilty_a of_o this_o now_o and_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v far_o from_o it_o heretofore_o but_o pag._n 83._o he_o tell_v i_o that_o he_o mean_v neither_o one_o present_a assembly_n nor_o yet_o one_o as_o unite_v in_o one_o visible_a humane_a head_n but_o abstract_v from_o that_o also_o be_v it_o but_o true_o and_o proper_o one_o 6._o whencesoever_o the_o unity_n be_v draw_v it_o be_v all_o alike_a to_o the_o solution_n of_o the_o argument_n answ._n then_o sure_o our_o business_n be_v in_o a_o hopeful_a way_n if_o not_o as_o good_a as_o end_v remember_v this_o and_o fly_v not_o from_o it_o our_o unity_n be_v in_o christ_n our_o head_n one_o king_n make_v we_o one_o kingdom_n all_o christian_n be_v one_o body_n of_o christ._n yea_o moreover_o we_o be_v one_o in_o all_o the_o seven_o point_n of_o unity_n require_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n eph._n 4._o viz._n we_o have_v 1._o one_o body_n of_o christ_n not_o of_o the_o pope_n 2._o one_o spirit_n 3._o one_o hope_n of_o our_o call_v viz._n eternal_a glory_n 4_o one_o lord_n without_o a_o vice-christ_n 5._o one_o faith_n summary_o in_o the_o creed_n and_o integral_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 6._o one_o baptism_n or_o solemnize_v baptismal_a covenant_n 7._o one_o god_n and_o father_n of_o all_o who_o be_v above_o all_o and_o through_o all_o and_o in_o we_o all_o yea_o as_o to_o the_o integral_n though_o our_o grace_n have_v various_a degree_n we_o all_o receive_v the_o inspire_a prophet_n apostle_n and_o evangelist_n authority_n and_o doctrine_n and_o the_o ordinary_a pastor_n and_o teacher_n that_o be_v send_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o call_v by_o the_o way_n which_o god_n have_v appoint_v though_o we_o receive_v not_o a_o usurper_n that_o make_v himself_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n in_o title_n while_o he_o govern_v not_o the_o ten_o part_n of_o it_o nor_o any_o according_a to_o god_n law_n and_o who_o be_v oft_o obtrude_v by_o whore_n and_o murder_n and_o be_v a_o wicked_a slave_n of_o satan_n so_o judge_v by_o his_o own_o general_n council_n we_o acknowledge_v that_o there_o be_v among_o we_o different_a opinion_n but_o neither_o for_o kind_a or_o number_n comparable_a to_o the_o difference_n of_o the_o papal_a sectary_n among_o themselves_o not_o for_o kind_a such_o as_o about_o murder_n adultery_n perjury_n lie_v false-witness_n yea_o about_o the_o love_n of_o god_n itself_o be_v by_o the_o jansenist_n charge_v on_o the_o jesuit_n and_o prove_v out_o of_o their_o express_a word_n nor_o such_o as_o mr._n clarkson_n have_v collect_v from_o the_o express_a word_n of_o their_o most_o famous_a doctor_n of_o all_o party_n nor_o such_o about_o king-killing_a dissolve_v subject_n oath_n etc._n etc._n as_o h._n fowlis_n have_v gather_v from_o the_o express_a word_n of_o your_o great_a doctor_n and_o for_o number_n all_o the_o sect_n in_o the_o world_n of_o christian_n set_v together_o have_v not_o half_a the_o controversy_n and_o contentious_a write_n against_o each_o other_o as_o your_o schoolman_n and_o other_o writer_n of_o your_o church_n have_v for_o our_o part_n we_o look_v not_o that_o our_o union_n shall_v be_v perfect_a till_o our_o wisdom_n and_o holiness_n and_o patience_n and_o we_o ourselves_o be_v perfect_a they_o that_o know_v but_o in_o part_n will_v err_v in_o part_n and_o differ_v in_o part_n we_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v diversity_n of_o gift_n but_o the_o same_o spirit_n and_o difference_n of_o administration_n but_o the_o same_o lord_n and_o diversity_n of_o operation_n but_o the_o same_o god_n who_o work_v all_o in_o all_o for_o as_o the_o bedy_n be_v one_o and_o have_v many_o member_n and_o all_o the_o member_n of_o that_o one_o body_n be_v many_o be_v one_o body_n so_o also_o be_v christ_n for_o by_o one_o spirit_n we_o be_v baptize_v into_o one_o body_n and_o have_v be_v all_o make_v to_o drink_v into_o one_o spirit_n thus_o be_v we_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n not_o of_o the_o pope_n and_o member_n in_o particular_a and_o god_n have_v set_v some_o in_o this_o body_n the_o church_n first_o apostle_n not_o first_o a_o vice-christ_n second_o prophet_n three_o teacher_n but_o no_o universal_a vicar-head_n all_o these_o be_v member_n and_o shall_v so_o live_v in_o love_n that_o there_o be_v no_o schism_n in_o the_o body_n but_o pag._n 84._o the_o man_n be_v not_o satisfy_v though_o i_o name_v they_o what_o i_o mean_v by_o these_o church_n unite_v in_o one_o christ._n 7._o answ._n how_o shall_v i_o make_v a_o man_n know_v that_o be_v unwilling_a or_o how_o but_o by_o name_v they_o by_o their_o country_n and_o profession_n i_o mean_v all_z the_o christian_n of_o
abassia_n armenia_n egypt_n syria_n the_o georgian_n the_o jacobite_n those_o false_o call_v by_o you_o nestorian_n and_o eutychian_o the_o african_n greek_n muscovite_n the_o britain_n seot_n swede_n dane_n belgian_n saxon_n helvetian_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o german_n transilvanian_o hungarian_n french_a etc._n etc._n which_o now_o disow_v the_o papacy_n who_o be_v some_o country_n never_o under_o the_o pope_n some_o country_n at_o first_o under_o he_o and_o after_o reject_v he_o and_o some_o at_o first_o from_o under_o his_o government_n next_o under_o he_o and_o after_o repent_v and_o all_o of_o they_o have_v be_v christian_n from_o their_o first_o conversion_n to_o this_o day_n can_v i_o speak_v plain_a but_o num._n 42._o he_o grant_v that_o all_o that_o be_v true_a christian_n be_v one_o kingdom_n or_o church_n of_o 8._o christ_n but_o deny_v that_o these_o be_v true_a christian_n and_o pag._n 84._o he_o will_v seem_v to_o give_v some_o reason_n for_o his_o denial_n say_v i_o deny_v it_o if_o they_o be_v independent_a on_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n answ._n 1._o even_o now_o he_o abstract_v from_o this_o but_o now_o they_o be_v no_o christian_n unless_o they_o be_v dependendents_n on_o the_o pope_n such_o a_o denial_n be_v a_o easy_a task_n and_o the_o sum_n of_o all_o their_o write_n but_o what_o need_v there_o then_o so_o many_o ambages_fw-la and_o large_a volume_n to_o bring_v out_o such_o a_o short_a and_o crude_a assertion_n can_v you_o not_o have_v say_v this_o without_o all_o the_o rest_n he_o be_v no_o christian_n that_o depend_v not_o on_o the_o pope_n but_o be_v it_o not_o incumbent_n on_o you_o to_o prove_v it_o undoubted_o it_o be_v 1._o in_o foro_fw-la scholastico_fw-la as_o a_o affirmer_n 2._o in_o foro_fw-la civili_fw-la &_o ecclesiastico_fw-la as_o a_o accuser_n and_o till_o you_o have_v prove_v it_o what_o need_v they_o or_o i_o care_v for_o yoùr_fw-la word_n must_v all_o man_n pass_v for_o no_o christian_n that_o a_o priest_n or_o jesuit_n will_v say_v be_v none_o or_o be_o i_o and_o all_o man_n disoblige_v from_o love_v all_o those_o as_o christian_n who_o such_o as_o you_o will_v affirm_v to_o be_v no_o christian_n love_n be_v easy_o destroy_v if_o this_o much_o will_v do_v it_o but_o it_o cost_v more_o than_o so_o to_o cause_v it_o pag._n 85._o he_o add_v let_v they_o have_v be_v as_o visible_a as_o you_o please_v that_o be_v nothing_o to_o i_o so_o be_v the_o arrian_n sabellian_o montanist_n etc._n etc._n prove_v they_o be_v no_o more_o than_o one_o visible_a congregation_n 9_o of_o christian_n among_o themselves_o and_o with_o orthodox_n christian_n that_o be_v the_o present_a controversy_n answ._n i_o hope_v we_o shall_v find_v out_o the_o controversy_n at_o last_o though_o it_o seem_v as_o hard_a almost_o as_o to_o resolve_v it_o how_o oft_o must_v i_o repeat_v the_o same_o proof_n again_o my_o proof_n be_v this_o those_o that_o be_v baptize_v into_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n and_o hold_v all_o essential_a to_o christianity_n not_o apostatise_v from_o the_o whole_a or_o any_o essential_a part_n be_v true_a christian_n but_o such_o be_v they_o before_o mention_v 1._o that_o they_o be_v baptise_a be_v not_o deny_v and_o baptise_v be_v christening_n and_o suppose_v the_o profession_n of_o all_o that_o be_v essential_a to_o christianity_n or_o else_o it_o can_v not_o make_v they_o christian_n 2._o no_o man_n that_o profess_v himself_o a_o christian_n must_v be_v take_v to_o be_v no_o christian_n till_o he_o be_v convict_v by_o lawful_a proof_n because_o as_o sincerity_n or_o heart-consent_n to_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n be_v our_o christianity_n as_o invisible_a before_o god_n so_o baptism_n and_o profess_a consent_n to_o that_o covenant_n be_v our_o visible_a christianity_n before_o man_n every_o man_n be_v the_o expositor_n of_o his_o own_o belief_n and_o resolution_n but_o that_o these_o church_n have_v apostat●…zed_v from_o the_o whole_a or_o any_o essential_a part_n of_o christianity_n be_v unprove_v and_o therefore_o not_o to_o be_v suppose_v as_o every_o particular_a man_n be_v to_o be_v take_v for_o a_o christian_n who_o be_v baptize_v and_o profess_v it_o till_o his_o profession_n be_v disprove_v so_o much_o more_o whole_a country_n and_o church_n that_o profess_v christianity_n must_v not_o be_v suppose_v without_o proof_n to_o be_v no_o christian_n if_o a_o papist_n will_v say_v to_o all_o the_o man_n in_o the_o city_n prove_v that_o you_o be_v no_o thief_n no_o adulterer_n no_o murderer_n no_o liar_n no_o traitor_n or_o else_o i_o will_v take_v you_o for_o such_o i_o think_v they_o may_v more_o just_o say_v prove_v that_o we_o be_v such_o or_o else_o we_o will_v take_v you_o for_o a_o standerer_n and_o that_o they_o be_v of_o one_o church_n i_o prove_v all_o christian_n be_v one_o church_n but_o those_o be_v christian_n therefore_o of_o one_o church_n the_o major_n be_v certain_a they_o that_o be_v the_o member_n and_o subject_n of_o one_o christ_n be_v of_o one_o church_n all_o christian_n be_v the_o member_n and_o subject_n of_o one_o christ_n therefore_o they_o be_v of_o one_o church_n all_o that_o have_v the_o seven_o term_n of_o union_n before_o mention_v out_o of_o eph._n 4._o be_v of_o one_o church_n but_o such_o be_v these_o before_o name_v here_o remember_v 1._o that_o i_o plead_v not_o for_o the_o christianity_n of_o any_o that_o be_v prove_v to_o deny_v indeed_o any_o one_o essential_a point_n of_o christianity_n but_o i_o will_v not_o believe_v this_o man_n that_o every_o thing_n institute_v by_o christ_n and_o so_o every_o word_n in_o the_o bible_n be_v such_o a_o essential_a nor_o that_o our_o church_n or_o religion_n be_v so_o strange_a a_o thing_n as_o to_o have_v no_o perpetual_a integral_a part_n nor_o accident_n but_o what_o will_v not_o some_o man_n have_v a_o face_n to_o defend_v 2._o that_o this_o same_o man_n have_v already_o maintain_v that_o no_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o pope_n to_o who_o he_o be_v not_o sufficient_o propound_v and_o that_o he_o confess_v that_o it_o be_v not_o yet_o agree_v among_o they_o that_o any_o more_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n to_o be_v explicit_o believe_v than_o that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n and_o reward_n for_o good_a work_n and_o yet_o two_o or_o three_o part_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n must_v be_v no_o christian_n nor_o member_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n because_o they_o be_v not_o member_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o let_v it_o be_v still_o remember_v to_o acquit_v the_o eastern_a and_o southern_a church_n from_o the_o papist_n charge_v of_o heresy_n as_o be_v nestorian_n and_o eutychian_o 1._o that_o the_o accuser_n be_v to_o be_v take_v for_o calumniator_n till_o they_o prove_v it_o by_o all_o the_o rule_n of_o common_a justice_n 2._o that_o if_o they_o can_v prove_v dioscorus_n e._n g._n a_o eutychian_a that_o be_v no_o proof_n that_o all_o the_o bishop_n that_o adhere_v to_o he_o be_v such_o for_o it_o be_v apparent_a by_o the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n that_o multitude_n adhere_v to_o he_o because_o they_o think_v he_o no_o eutychian_a and_o derodon_n the_o supposit●…_n have_v undeniable_o prove_v that_o dioscorus_n say_v but_o what_o his_o predecessor_n cyril_n have_v oft_o say_v who_o you_o approve_v and_o many_o because_o they_o think_v the_o judgement_n unjust_a that_o judge_v he_o so_o and_o cast_v he_o out_o and_o many_o for_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o seat_n yea_o many_o for_o fear_n of_o death_n by_o the_o people_n that_o be_v affect_v to_o he_o as_o their_o patriarch_n though_o they_o understand_v not_o the_o cause_n in_o question_n he_o that_o read_v the_o bishop_n at_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n part_n cry_v out_o prostrate_a on_o the_o earth_n miseremini_fw-la miseremini_fw-la non_fw-la dissentimus_fw-la else_o kill_v we_o here_o we_o dare_v not_o go_v home_o if_o we_o desert_n and_o rail_v against_o our_o patriarch_n before_o another_o be_v choose_v the_o people_n will_v kill_v we_o and_o another_o part_n of_o they_o confess_v that_o fear_n make_v they_o subscribe_v at_o the_o council_n at_o ephes._n 2._o and_o some_o cry_v out_o away_o with_o they_o they_o be_v heretic_n who_o cry_v non_fw-la dissentimus_fw-la may_v well_o judge_v that_o all_o be_v not_o heretic_n that_o clamour_n call_v so_o 3._o if_o they_o can_v prove_v those_o few_o bishop_n that_o be_v open_o accuse_v and_o note_v to_o be_v eutychian_o that_o be_v no_o proof_n that_o the_o rest_n be_v so_o 4._o if_o they_o can_v prove_v that_o many_o than_o be_v so_o that_o will_v not_o prove_v that_o those_o that_o now_o there_o inhabit_v be_v so_o 5._o and_o of_o nestorianism_n there_o be_v less_o public_a show_n of_o proof_n 6._o and_o indeed_o the_o main_a body_n of_o the_o common_a
must_v i_o tell_v you_o the_o opinion_n of_o all_o the_o people_n of_o foreign_a land_n be_v this_o necessary_a to_o know_v a_o papist_n can_v i_o tell_v you_o that_o man_n be_v papist_n that_o profess_v subjection_n to_o the_o pope_n as_o the_o vice-christ_n unless_o i_o tell_v you_o that_o they_o be_v molinist_n or_o dominican_n franciscan_n benedictines_n jesuit_n jansenist_n etc._n etc._n their_o profession_n of_o christianity_n be_v notorious_a if_o you_o can_v prove_v they_o no_o christian_n do_v i_o suppose_v that_o one_o of_o twenty_o thousand_o of_o they_o never_o study_v the_o eutychian_a or_o nestorian_a controversy_n any_o more_o than_o those_o christian_n that_o die_v before_o these_o name_n and_o man_n be_v bear_v and_o i_o suppose_v that_o when_o these_o name_n come_v first_o up_o one_o pastor_n of_o a_o hundred_o may_v side_n with_o one_o of_o these_o sect_n which_o the_o age_n follow_v little_o mind_v as_o to_o any_o considerable_a number_n and_o i_o suppose_v that_o some_o that_o defend_v eutyches_n and_o nestorius_n know_v not_o what_o the_o heresy_n be_v and_o err_v not_o so_o gross_o as_o those_o jesuit_n do_v about_o murder_n adultery_n perjury_n etc._n etc._n who_o montaltus_n and_o the_o jesuit_n moral_n describe_v nor_o your_o common_a doctor_n cite_v by_o mr._n clarkson_n no_o nor_o so_o bad_a as_o the_o council_n of_o rome_n constance_n and_o basil_n say_v your_o pope_n have_v do_v nor_o as_o other_o of_o you_o say_v those_o council_n do_v no_o nor_o as_o the_o council_n at_o the_o lateran_n do_v in_o decree_a the_o extermination_n of_o all_o that_o you_o call_v heretic_n and_o the_o deposition_n of_o prince_n that_o will_v not_o exterminate_v they_o and_o the_o disoblige_a subject_n from_o their_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n but_o if_o this_o argue_v of_o you_o be_v good_a suppose_v it_o use_v with_o yourselves_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o that_o you_o profess_v yourselves_o christian_n and_o papist_n tell_v we_o what_o other_o opinion_n you_o be_v of_o or_o else_o how_o can_v we_o know_v that_o you_o be_v christian_n but_o we_o be_v ashamed_a of_o such_o method_n when_o the_o law_n of_o nation_n bind_v all_o man_n beyond_o their_o profession_n to_o prove_v that_o they_o be_v no_o traitor_n no_o thief_n fornicator_n liar_n etc._n etc._n then_o i_o may_v yield_v that_o man_n profess_v christianity_n must_v prove_v further_a that_o they_o be_v no_o heretic_n or_o invalidate_v not_o their_o own_o profession_n but_o yet_o i_o will_v not_o then_o grant_v you_o that_o any_o be_v oblige_v to_o prove_v this_o but_o themselves_o how_o can_v i_o prove_v such_o negative_n of_o million_o in_o the_o remote_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n if_o they_o can_v prove_v it_o of_o themselves_o call_v they_o to_o do_v it_o if_o you_o must_v have_v such_o negative_n prove_v but_o see_v that_o you_o call_v they_o one_o by_o one_o for_o my_o neighbour_n error_n prove_v not_o i_o if_o i_o be_v put_v to_o take_v you_o and_o all_o the_o papist_n in_o england_n for_o no_o christian_n unless_o i_o can_v prove_v you_o to_o be_v no_o sectary_n no_o heretic_n no_o traitor_n no_o drunkard_n perjure_a fornicator_n etc._n etc._n how_o be_v it_o possible_a for_o i_o to_o prove_v it_o by_o any_o one_o of_o you_o this_o be_v one_o difference_n it_o seem_v between_o the_o justice_n of_o the_o papal_a church-government_n and_o christ_n and_o perhaps_o this_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o the_o rack_n and_o torment_n of_o the_o inquisition_n to_o make_v man_n confess_v what_o opinion_n they_o be_v of_o the_o answer_n to_o w._n j_n three_o chapter_n he_o begin_v that_o which_o he_o call_v his_o three_o chapter_n pap_n 88_o 89._o with_o again_o repeat_v his_o 1_o question_n thus_o be_v they_o all_o unite_a in_o the_o profession_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o faith_n and_o unity_n of_o external_a communion_n without_o those_o two_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o be_v unite_v in_o christ._n answ._n i_o be_o afraid_a these_o repetition_n will_v tire_v the_o reader_n i_o have_v prove_v they_o unite_v in_o one_o faith_n even_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o in_o one_o external_n communion_n in_o much_o more_o of_o it_o than_o be_v essential_a to_o christianity_n viz._n in_o one_o baptism_n the_o lord_n supper_n prayer_n praise_n thanksgiving_n confession_n of_o sin_n preach_v and_o read_v the_o word_n of_o god_n observation_n of_o the_o lord_n day_n etc._n etc._n without_o differ_v in_o any_o thing_n inconsistent_a with_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o if_o by_o the_o ambiguous_a word_n of_o unity_n of_o external_n communion_n you_o shall_v mean_v either_o that_o they_o must_v meet_v all_o in_o one_o place_n or_o be_v all_o under_o one_o pastor_n these_o you_o before_o disow_v and_o if_o you_o mean_v that_o they_o must_v all_o have_v one_o book_n of_o liturgy_n you_o know_v that_o so_o have_v not_o your_o roman_a church_n of_o above_o 600_o year_n at_o least_o nor_o yet_o the_o eastern_a church_n nor_o any_o considerable_a number_n of_o they_o every_o bishop_n make_v his_o lyturgie_n or_o prayer_n as_o he_o see_v meet_v if_o you_o mean_v that_o they_o must_v have_v no_o difference_n in_o any_o word_n or_o ceremony_n and_o that_o all_o be_v of_o several_a church_n or_o half_o of_o no_o church_n who_o differ_v about_o meat_n drink_n day_n etc._n etc._n i_o shall_v not_o believe_v you_o while_o i_o believe_v the_o scripture_n rom._n 14._o and_o 15._o 1_o cor._n 8._o jam._n 3._o etc._n etc._n nor_o till_o i_o renounce_v humanity_n or_o believe_v that_o man_n of_o several_a complexion_n stature_n or_o language_n may_v not_o yet_o be_v all_o true_o man_n they_o that_o bring_v it_o to_o that_o that_o i_o be_o no_o christian_n if_o i_o eat_v not_o fish_n in_o lent_n rather_o than_o flesh_n may_v unchristian_a i_o next_o if_o i_o eat_v not_o my_o bread_n without_o cheese_n or_o my_o cheese_n without_o bread_n or_o if_o i_o take_v not_o the_o pope_n for_o my_o apothecary_n or_o physician_n lay_v by_o the_o sword_n and_o rack_n and_o fire_n and_o the_o world_n will_v soon_o laugh_v down_o your_o arrogant_a tyranny_n i_o demand_v his_o proof_n that_o ever_o there_o be_v a_o papist_n or_o almost_o one_o church_n of_o papist_n in_o the_o world_n for_o 400_o year_n after_o christ_n and_o he_o tell_v i_o that_o the_o oration_n of_o pope_n celestine_n be_v 2._o legate_n in_o the_o council_n at_o ephesus_n prove_v it_o and_o though_o that_o council_n be_v celebrate_v 430_o yet_o in_o a_o moral_a consideration_n that_o pass_v for_o 400_o etc._n etc._n answ._n what_o can_v the_o jesuit_n moral_n make_v good_a by_o they_o 430_o year_n be_v within_o the_o 400._o and_o by_o they_o a_o speech_n of_o the_o pope_n legate_n go_v for_o proof_n of_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o council_n but_o what_o be_v that_o speech_n itself_o first_o note_v that_o the_o council_n be_v call_v by_o theodosius_n the_o emperor_n and_o not_o by_o celestine_n send_v his_o literae_fw-la augustales_fw-la to_o all_o the_o metropolitan_o command_v they_o to_o appear_v at_o ephesus_n 2._o that_o cyril_n and_o not_o celestine_n be_v send_v to_o at_o first_o for_o help_v from_o the_o church_n at_o constantinople_n 3._o that_o cyril_n preside_v and_o whereas_o the_o papist_n feign_v that_o he_o do_v it_o as_o the_o pope_n substitute_n the_o council_n letter_n to_o the_o emperor_n express_v that_o the_o pope_n three_o legate_n be_v the_o man_n that_o represent_v his_o person_n bin._n p._n 756._o and_o that_o they_o commend_v to_o theodosius_n the_o judgement_n of_o the_o pope_n but_o as_o the_o signification_n of_o common_a consent_n 4._o and_o when_o all_o be_v do_v these_o word_n of_o philip_n a_o roman_a presbyter_n be_v all_o that_o this_o great_a boast_n be_v of_o thank_v they_o for_o so_o receive_v the_o pope_n letter_n non_fw-la enim_fw-la ignara_fw-la est_fw-la vestra_fw-la beatitudo_fw-la totius_fw-la fidei_fw-la caeterorumque_fw-la omnium_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la caput_fw-la b●…atum_fw-la apostolum_n petrum_fw-la extitisse_fw-la and_o after_o that_o peter_n the_o foundation_n and_o head_n have_v the_o key_n and_o live_v and_o judge_v in_o his_o successor_n but_o he_o deny_v not_o that_o the_o other_o apostle_n also_o have_v the_o key_n and_o that_o the_o church_n be_v build_v on_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o these_o high_a word_n speak_v to_o keep_v up_o the_o pope_n greatness_n in_o the_o empire_n be_v but_o to_o maintain_v his_o place_n in_o council_n and_o never_o speak_v to_o the_o church_n without_o the_o empire_n nor_o such_o power_n over_o they_o claim_v by_o he_o and_o the_o council_n decree_n be_v pass_v before_o these_o legate_n come_v by_o who_o consent_n cyril_n be_v glad_a to_o strengthen_v his_o party_n have_v be_v condemn_v by_o joh._n antioch_n nestorius_n etc._n etc._n and_o do_v not_o hesichius_n say_v as_o much_o of_o
and_o the_o claim_n of_o the_o monarchy_n of_o all_o the_o earth_n be_v then_o but_o in_o the_o egg_n even_o after_o 600_o year_n and_o come_v not_o into_o the_o open_a world_n till_o about_o the_o time_n that_o mahomet_n come_v else_o undoubted_o your_o lyturgick_a commemoration_n and_o prayer_n will_v have_v have_v some_o mention_n of_o the_o universal_a bishop_n as_o well_o as_o our_o prayer_n mention_v the_o king_n and_o bishop_n especial_o when_o it_o be_v then_o the_o custom_n to_o record_v and_o commemorate_v all_o the_o patriarch_n and_o great_a prelate_n and_o the_o imposition_n will_v have_v come_v forth_o as_o by_o his_o authority_n as_o the_o trent_n symbolical_a oath_n do_v and_o as_o our_o lyturgie_n do_v by_o authority_n of_o the_o king_n and_o parliament_n and_o convocation_n sure_o this_o be_v much_o against_o you_o because_o he_o know_v not_o the_o scholiaste_v mention_v by_o usher_n he_o question_v his_o citation_n about_o the_o change_n of_o the_o ethiopic_a lyturgie_n i_o next_o add_v that_o constantin_n letter_n of_o request_n to_o the_o king_n of_o persia_n for_o the_o church_n there_o mention_v by_o eusebius_n in_o vit._n const._n do_v intimate_v that_o then_o the_o roman_a bishop_n rule_v not_o 4._o there_o to_o this_o he_o say_v why_o so_o the_o pope_n may_v command_v and_o the_o emperor_n entreat_v answ._n 1._o this_o show_v that_o the_o emperor_n who_o use_v to_o call_v council_n call_v none_o out_o of_o persia_n for_o they_o have_v no_o power_n there_o 2._o and_o withal_o why_o be_v there_o not_o a_o syllable_n in_o any_o church-history_n or_o credible_a author_n that_o we_o have_v hear_v of_o that_o mention_v that_o ever_o the_o pope_n send_v one_o command_v into_o persia_n or_o that_o ever_o he_o correct_v suspend_v or_o depose_v any_o bishop_n there_o or_o excommunicate_v any_o there_o though_o indeed_o that_o have_v be_v no_o sign_n of_o govern_v power_n see_v a_o equal_a may_v renounce_v communion_n with_o a_o equal_a heretical_a society_n or_o person_n why_o be_v there_o no_o mention_n that_o ever_o any_o general_a council_n do_v any_o of_o this_o no_o nor_o ever_o take_v any_o such_o exterior_a church_n into_o their_o care_n any_o otherwise_o than_o as_o neighbour_n to_o help_v they_o nor_o never_o make_v any_o one_o govern_v canon_n for_o they_o and_o i_o pray_v you_o how_o will_v the_o persian_a king_n that_o must_v be_v entreat_v by_o constantine_n have_v take_v it_o to_o have_v the_o religion_n of_o his_o kingdom_n under_o the_o command_n of_o one_o of_o constantine_n subject_n but_o you_o have_v the_o affirmative_a let_v we_o see_v your_o proof_n that_o ever_o the_o pope_n govern_v the_o persian_a church_n next_o i_o note_v that_o even_o at_o home_o here_o the_o scot_n and_o britain_n obey_v not_o the_o pope_n even_o in_o the_o day_n of_o gregory_n above_o 600_o but_o resist_v his_o change_n and_o refuse_v communion_n with_o his_o minister_n to_o this_o he_o reply_v that_o 1._o this_o be_v their_o error_n as_o our_o disobedience_n now_o be_v and_o beda_n so_o charge_v it_o on_o they_o that_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o they_o have_v never_o be_v under_o the_o pope_n 2._o that_o they_o also_o hold_v that_o which_o be_v condemn_v as_o a_o heresy_n at_o nice_a yet_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o they_o be_v not_o under_o that_o council_n authority_n 3._o they_o also_o refuse_v communion_n with_o the_o english_a convert_v answ._n these_o word_n signify_v what_o you_o will_v have_v we_o believe_v but_o let_v we_o try_v what_o more_o 1._o see_v you_o can_v bring_v no_o word_n of_o proof_n that_o ever_o they_o have_v be_v subject_a to_o the_o pope_n before_o and_o 2._o see_v they_o be_v find_v utter_o alien_n to_o his_o subjection_n and_o 3._o see_v they_o be_v find_v in_o possession_n of_o opinion_n and_o custom_n quite_o contrary_a to_o the_o pope_n 4._o and_o see_v they_o plead_v tradition_n for_o this_o 5._o and_o see_v they_o renounce_v communion_n with_o those_o that_o come_v to_o subjugate_v they_o and_o 6._o see_v the_o pope_n minister_n never_o pretend_v to_o any_o ancient_a possession_n in_o plead_v with_o they_o as_o you_o may_v see_v in_o beda_n 7._o and_o see_v we_o read_v in_o beda_n gildas_n and_o other_o that_o they_o have_v heretofore_o make_v use_n of_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o french_a church_n by_o germanus_n and_o lupus_n as_o more_o neighbour_n without_o any_o mention_n of_o subjection_n to_o rome_n let_v the_o reader_n that_o care_v what_o he_o believe_v now_o judge_v whether_o ever_o the_o scot_n and_o britain_n be_v before_o subject_a ●…o_o the_o pope_n 2._o it_o be_v false_a that_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a condemn_v their_o easter-practice_n as_o a_o heresy_n though_o they_o unite_v on_o a_o contrary_a resolution_n and_o as_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o that_o council_n have_v no_o authority_n out_o of_o the_o empire_n and_o so_o not_o over_o britain_n when_o it_o be_v out_o of_o the_o empire_n so_o this_o british_a custom_n plain_o intimate_v that_o britain_n have_v not_o receive_v the_o decree_n of_o that_o council_n 3._o that_o they_o refuse_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o english_a as_o half_a papist_n it_o be_v no_o great_a wonder_n and_o yet_o i_o remember_v no_o proof_n of_o that_o at_o all_o in_o beda_n but_o only_o that_o take_v the_o english_a for_o pagan-tyrant_n that_o conquer_a and_o oppress_v they_o they_o refuse_v to_o join_v with_o augustine_n the_o monki_n in_o preach_v to_o they_o it_o be_v like_o take_v it_o for_o a_o hopeless_a attempt_n in_o they_o that_o be_v odious_a to_o they_o and_o open_a enemy_n and_o not_o to_o be_v trust_v next_o i_o recite_v the_o word_n of_o their_o reinerius_n cont._n waidens_n catal._n bibl._n pat._n to._n 4._o p._n 773._o 16._o the_o church_n of_o the_o a●…enians_n ethiopian_n and_o indian_n and_o the_o rest_n which_o the_o apostle_n convert_v be_v not_o under_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n one_o will_v think_v plain_a word_n he_o reply_v no_o more_o be_v you_o what_o then_o our_o question_n be_v not_o of_o what_o be_v do_v de_fw-la facto_fw-la for_o the_o ●…present_v but_o what_o de_fw-mi jure_v aught_o to_o be_v do_v or_o have_v be_v do_v the_o author_n say_v not_o these_o nation_n be_v never_o under_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o be_v not_o now_o aus_n it_o be_v no_o wonder_n that_o you_o desire_v to_o be_v the_o expositor_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o all_o other_o book_n for_o that_o be_v the_o only_a device_n to_o make_v they_o speak_v what_o you_o will_v have_v they_o if_o gregory_n the_o seven_o be_v the_o expositor_n of_o st._n paul_n no_o doubt_n but_o st._n paul_n shall_v be_v for_o the_o power_n of_o pope_n to_o depose_v king_n and_o emperor_n if_o innocent_a the_o three_o be_v his_o expositor_n no_o doubt_n but_o by_o bread_n 1_n cor._n 11._o he_o mean_v no_o bread_n and_o by_o this_o cup_n no_o wine_n and_o i_o confess_v there_o be_v great_a reason_n that_o you_o shall_v be_v the_o infallible_a expositor_n of_o reynerius_n than_o of_o christ_n or_o paul_n for_o he_o be_v more_o your_o own_o and_o under_o your_o government_n but_o this_o reynerius_n be_v a_o unhappy_a speaker_n and_o if_o he_o be_v here_o i_o will_v ask_v he_o 1._o why_o do_v you_o speak_v in_o such_o a_o manner_n as_o any_o ordinary_a reader_n will_v think_v that_o you_o speak_v de_fw-fr jure_fw-la &_o de_fw-la facto_fw-la and_o yet_o mean_v de_fw-fr facto_fw-la only_o 2._o why_o speak_v you_o so_o as_o a_o ordinary_a reader_n will_v think_v that_o you_o speak_v d●…_n statu_fw-la statuto_fw-la when_o you_o mean_v but_o de_fw-fr praeente_fw-la &_o statu_fw-la inordinato_fw-la 3._o why_o speak_v you_o of_o so_o great_a a_o sin_n as_o rebellion_n against_o the_o vice-christ_n and_o schism_n from_o the_o universal_a church_n without_o any_o note_n of_o reprehension_n 4._o why_o name_v you_o the_o old_a extra_fw-la imperial_a church_n only_o and_o not_o those_o that_o since_o renounce_v rome_n as_o all_o the_o greek_a church_n if_o you_o mean_v but_o what_o you_o charge_v the_o greek_a church_n with_o have_v you_o not_o more_o easy_o fasten_v a_o charge_n of_o rebellion_n on_o all_o those_o eustern_a church_n that_o sometime_o acknowledge_v some_o primacy_n of_o rome_n than_o on_o those_o that_o the_o world_n know_v be_v never_o under_o he_o 5._o and_o why_o do_v you_o say_v also_o in_o general_n and_o the_o rest_n which_o the_o apostle_n convert_v be_v not_o under_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n if_o there_o be_v not_o some_o special_a reason_n for_o it_o we_o take_v your_o meaning_n to_o be_v though_o those_o in_o the_o empire_n and_o many_o without_o it_o that_o be_v turn_v from_o infidelity_n by_o the_o pope_n subject_n be_v under_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o first_o by_o the_o law_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o council_n and_o the_o latter_a
prove_v what_o they_o list_v and_o this_o be_v their_o proof_n of_o universal_a tradition_n and_o the_o papal_a sovereignty_n of_o the_o world_n he_o conclude_v ●…ou_fw-gr will_v not_o forget_v to_o answer_v these_o question_n in_o your_o next_o and_o i_o think_v i_o have_v not_o forget_v it_o nor_o fail_v to_o evince_v his_o worse_a than_o forgetfulness_n and_o that_o the_o council_n then_o extend_v but_o to_o the_o roman_a empire_n and_o consequent_o the_o papal_a and_o patriarchal_a pretension●…_n to_o no_o more_o and_o even_o of_o the_o pope_n western_a diocese_n the_o number_n of_o bishop_n at_o those_o eastern_a great_a council_n be_v not_o considerable_a nor_o yet_o any_o agency_n of_o the_o pope_n in_o and_o about_o they_o w._n j_n four_o chapter_n answer_v i_o next_o add_v for_o he_o begin_v his_o chapter_n in_o the_o middle_n of_o a_o section_n 2._o that_o the_o emperor_n 1_o call_v and_o enforce_v the_o council_n who_o have_v no_o power_n out_o of_o the_o empire_n to_o this_o he_o say_v call_v they_o they_o alone_o have_v they_o not_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n join_v with_o they_o or_o rather_o presuppose_v to_o they_o prove_v that_o the_o emperor_n call_v they_o ans._n shall_v i_o prove_v it_o to_o those_o that_o have_v read_v the_o history_n of_o the_o council_n or_o to_o they_o that_o have_v not_o if_o to_o they_o that_o have_v not_o i_o can_v prove_v it_o or_o any_o such_o matter_n but_o by_o desire_v they_o to_o read_v it_o if_o you_o tell_v a_o woman_n that_o it_o be_v ten_o thousand_o year_n since_o the_o world_n be_v create_v and_o i_o tell_v she_o it_o be_v not_o 600_o neither_o of_o we_o prove_v to_o she_o what_o we_o say_v but_o she_o will_v believe_v he_o that_o she_o like_v best_o but_o to_o he_o that_o have_v read_v or_o will_v read_v the_o history_n i_o disdain_v the_o task_n must_v i_o write_v book_n to_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v such_o man_n as_o constantine_n or_o theodosius_n in_o the_o world_n i_o will_v be_v none_o of_o that_o man_n teacher_n that_o have_v read_v the_o full_a history_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a first_o and_o second_o of_o ephes._n first_o and_o second_o of_o constantinople_n first_o second_o third_z four_o five_o etc._n etc._n of_o sirmium_n armenium_n and_o many_o such_o as_o can_v see_v that_o the_o emperor_n call_v they_o without_o any_o previous_a call_v or_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n some_o as_o nice_a the_o emperor_n call_v immediate_o by_o his_o own_o letter_n without_o a_o word_n of_o the_o pope_n interpose_v authority_n or_o call_v most_o of_o the_o emperor_n write_v to_o the_o patriarch_n and_o metropolitan_n to_o call_v the_o bishop_n under_o they_o sometime_o to_o the_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n first_o if_o not_o only_o to_o call_v the_o rest_n sometime_o to_o he_o of_o constantinople_n and_o sometime_o to_o all_o the_o five_o and_o if_o the_o pope_n do_v at_o any_o time_n send_v a_o bishop_n or_o two_o and_o a_o priest_n thither_o you_o thence_o pretend_v that_o the_o pope_n call_v the_o council_n he_o add_v have_v not_o the_o emperor_n power_n to_o signify_v to_o those_o extra-imperials_a that_o a_o council_n be_v to_o be_v celebrate_v and_o to_o invite_v they_o at_o least_o ans._n yes_o sure_a even_o at_o the_o antipode_n but_o when_o the_o history_n tell_v we_o that_o he_o command_v and_o oft_o threaten_v they_o if_o they_o come_v not_o and_o that_o he_o write_v to_o they_o and_o the_o man_n be_v name_v what_o signify_v your_o question_n w._n i._o can_v not_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n or_o other_o under_o who_o jurisdiction_n they_o be_v respective_o notify_v to_o they_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o council_n and_o require_v their_o presence_n in_o it_o you_o can_v but_o see_v this_o ans._n i_o can_v but_o see_v your_o shame_n when_o you_o open_v it_o 1._o can_v not_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n have_v call_v they_o yes_o no_o doubt_n but_o no_o history_n say_v that_o they_o be_v so_o call_v but_o tell_v we_o how_o in_o another_o manner_n 2._o the_o word_n jurisdiction_n signify_v so_o much_o of_o your_o error_n and_o interest_n that_o you_o be_v resolve_v at_o least_o to_o keep_v up_o the_o name_n and_o supposition_n and_o when_o you_o do_v but_o add_v over_o all_o the_o world_n it_o make_v i_o remember_v christ_n temptation_n all_o this_o will_v i_o give_v thou_o but_o it_o be_v too_o strong_a a_o temptation_n for_o the_o pope_n to_o overcome_v but_o you_o will_v have_v gratify_v i_o much_o if_o you_o have_v tell_v i_o what_o patriarch_n jurisdiction_n in_o those_o time_n the_o church_n in_o persia_n and_o india_n and_o the_o rest_n that_o be_v extra-imperial_a do_v belong_v to_o or_o where_o i_o may_v find_v any_o notice_n of_o the_o summons_n that_o the_o pope_n or_o any_o patriarch_n send_v they_o to_o any_o of_o those_o ancient_a council_n 3._o i_o tell_v he_o that_o the_o diocese_n which_o these_o bishop_n be_v relate_v to_o be_v describe_v and_o express_o confine_v within_o the_o verge_n of_o the_o empire_n vid._n blondel_n de_fw-fr primatu_fw-la 2._o to_o this_o 1._o he_o take_v it_o for_o a_o fob_n to_o be_v refer_v to_o bloudel_n answ._n look_v then_o in_o your_o own_o cosmographer_n and_o even_o in_o aub●…rtus_n myraeus_n his_o notitia_fw-la episcopatuum_fw-la abate_v his_o fiction_n of_o the_o submission_n of_o the_o abassine_a emperor_n and_o suchlike_a in_o he_o and_o his_o confession_n that_o his_o book_n have_v next_o to_o nothing_o of_o the_o patriarchate_o of_o alexandria_n he_o tell_v you_o that_o the_o armenia_n major_a and_o minor_a be_v in_o the_o province_n of_o pontus_n scythia_n in_o the_o province_n of_o thracia_n etc._n etc._n and_o that_o you_o may_v know_v who_o it_o be_v that_o give_v these_o jurisdiction_n he_o tell_v you_o how_o justinian_n give_v his_o name_n to_o a_o city_n of_o bulgaria_n subject_v many_o bishop_n of_o dacia_n dardania_n mysia_n pannonia_n etc._n etc._n to_o that_o archbishop_n with_o this_o addition_n say_v &_o ille_fw-la ab_fw-la ipsis_fw-la consecretur_fw-la &_o eadem_fw-la jura_fw-la super_fw-la eos_fw-la habeat_fw-la quae_fw-la papa_n romanus_n habet_fw-la super_fw-la episcopos_fw-la sibi_fw-la subditos_fw-la be_v that_o all_o the_o world_n then_o novel_a 119._o 508._o he_o next_o cit_v pisanus_n nicene_n canon_n give_v the_o pope_n universal_a power_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o alex._n and_o antioch_n extra-imperial_a power_n and_o he_o promise_v hereafter_o to_o justify_v those_o canon_n but_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n i_o shall_v as_o much_o regard_n his_o citation_n out_o of_o esop_n fable_n or_o out_o of_o genebrard_n or_o cochleus_n he_o say_v the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n c._n 28._o give_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n authority_n over_o the_o barbarous_a nation_n near_o those_o part_n that_o be_v such_o as_o be_v extra-imperial_a such_o as_o that_o of_o russia_n and_o muscovia_n answ._n be_v not_o this_o a_o confident_a man_n 1._o the_o council_n say_v only_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o foresaid_a diocese_n name_v only_o pontus_n asia_n and_o thracia_n which_o be_v among_o the_o barbarous_a shall_v be_v ordain_v by_o the_o throne_n of_o const._n and_o who_o know_v not_o that_o the_o word_n diocese_n signify_v then_o a_o part_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o that_o many_o of_o the_o barbareu_n so_o call_v then_o be_v within_o the_o empire_n such_o as_o be_v the_o scythian_n goth_n or_o getae_n or_o sauromatae_n which_o eusebius_n say_v be_v conquer_a by_o constantine_n but_o be_v here_o any_o mention_n of_o russia_n or_o muscovy_n 2._o and_o how_o long_o after_o this_o be_v it_o that_o all_o history_n tell_v we_o the_o muscovite_n and_o russian_n that_o be_v not_o goth_n be_v convert_v to_o christianity_n so_o that_o here_o be_v not_o a_o syllable_n in_o all_o that_o he_o have_v say_v for_o popery_n except_o the_o canon_n of_o pisanus_n and_o turrian_n which_o they_o must_v better_o prove_v before_o we_o take_v they_o to_o be_v of_o any_o just_a regard_n it_o be_v not_o the_o word_n of_o baptista_n romanus_n or_o any_o late_a jesuite_n that_o can_v suffice_v we_o i_o add_v last_o that_o patriarchal_a privilege_n be_v ordinary_o give_v by_o the_o emperor_n who_o add_v and_o alter_v and_o sometime_o set_v rome_n high_a and_o sometime_o constantinople_n his_o many_o vain_a word_n against_o this_o i_o will_v not_o tire_v the_o reader_n with_o recite_v every_o man_n know_v it_o that_o know_v church-history_n why_o else_o in_o the_o day_n of_o mauricius_n and_o phocas_n be_v one_o set_v high_a at_o one_o time_n and_o the_o other_o at_o another_o time_n how_o else_o come_v the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n to_o pretend_v to_o universal_a primacy_n his_o marvel_n that_o i_o translate_v pontifex_n pope_n as_o if_o never_o man_n have_v so_o do_v as_o if_o we_o have_v never_o read_v bellarmine_n
the_o leprosy_n of_o some_o christian_n he_o must_v know_v whether_o all_o the_o church_n be_v not_o leprous_a then_o 2._o and_o whether_o man_n can_v with_o a_o safe_a conscience_n have_v communion_n with_o any_o answ._n 1._o he_o that_o say_v he_o have_v no_o sin_n be_v alyar_n say_v st._n john_n all_o christian_n and_o therefore_o all_o church_n be_v defile_v with_o sin_n 2._o all_o be_v not_o equal_o defile_v i_o have_v tell_v you_o that_o the_o papist_n be_v not_o the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o for_o many_o hundred_o year_n there_o be_v none_o 3._o we_o must_v not_o separate_v from_o all_o church_n that_o have_v sin_n but_o we_o must_v not_o wilful_o sin_n for_o their_o communion_n and_o we_o must_v join_v local_o with_o the_o best_a we_o can_v and_o in_o spirit_n join_v with_o all_o as_o far_o as_o they_o join_v with_o christ_n be_v not_o this_o plain_a and_o sufficient_a to_o your_o cavil_v §_o 5._o he_o say_v p._n 423._o that_o our_o external_a profession_n in_o the_o particular_n of_o our_o belief_n or_o rather_o disbelief_n against_o the_o roman_a church_n show_v our_o general_a profession_n of_o christianity_n to_o be_v false_a as_o the_o arrian_n be_v answ._n what_o be_v easy_a than_o to_o say_v so_o but_o where_o be_v your_o proof_n §_o 6._o after_o a_o repetition_n of_o his_o talk_n against_o christ_n as_o no_o visible_a head_n he_o cavil_v at_o the_o form_n of_o my_o first_o argument_n which_o be_v this_o the_o body_n of_o christian_n on_o earth_n subject_v to_o christ_n their_o head_n have_v be_v in_o its_o part_n visible_a ever_o since_o the_o day_n of_o christ_n on_o earth_n but_o the_o body_n of_o christian_n on_o earth_n subject_v to_o christ_n their_o head_n be_v the_o church_n of_o which_o the_o protestant_n be_v member_n therefore_o the_o church_n of_o which_o the_o protestant_n be_v member_n have_v be_v visible_a ever_o since_o th●…_n day_n of_o christ_n on_o earth_n and_o first_o he_o say_v that_o it_o be_v out_o of_o form_n because_o it_o have_v never_o a_o universal_a proposition_n answ._n this_o be_v the_o man_n that_o will_v not_o dispute_v but_o in_o mere_a syllogism_n what_o need_v i_o a_o universal_a proposition_n if_o you_o be_v to_o prove_v that_o cephas_n be_v peter_n or_o peter_n be_v a_o apostle_n of_o the_o first_o place_n must_v you_o have_v a_o universal_a proposition_n what_o universal_a must_v there_o be_v above_o the_o body_n of_o christian_n etc._n etc._n 2._o he_o say_v that_o the_o word_n those_o form_n require_v shall_v have_v be_v all_o those_o when_o as_o there_o be_v never_o a_o those_o at_o all_o in_o the_o argument_n be_v not_o this_o a_o accurate_a reformer_n of_o syllogism_n that_o amend_v term_n that_o be_v not_o write_v and_o talk_v like_o a_o dreamer_n of_o he_o know_v not_o what_o but_o what_o be_v the_o all_n that_o the_o man_n will_v have_v have_v be_v it_o all_o those_o body_n of_o christian_n when_o we_o be_v all_o agree_v that_o christ_n have_v but_o one_o political_a body_n if_o i_o have_v be_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o world_n that_o protestant_n be_v part_n of_o have_v be_v visible_a since_o adam_n or_o that_o the_o god_n the_o protestant_n worship_n be_v almighty_a must_v i_o have_v say_v all_o those_o world_n and_o all_o those_o god_n nay_o have_v i_o say_v but_o whatsoever_o world_n or_o whatsoever_o god_n it_o have_v sound_v ill_o among_o man_n that_o be_v agree_v that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o sure_o a_o expository_n medium_n that_o be_v but_o notius_fw-la be_v enough_o next_o he_o say_v that_o i_o put_v more_o in_o the_o medium_n of_o the_o major_a than_o in_o the_o medium_n of_o the_o minor_a and_o so_o it_o have_v four_o term_n answ._n wonderful_a this_o be_v the_o man_n that_o dispute_v with_o our_o two_o great_a logician_n and_o public_a professor_n of_o cambridge_n bishop_n gunning_n and_o bishop_n peirson_n and_o as_o a_o triumpher_n print_v the_o dispute_n and_o challenge_v man_n in_o london_n to_o syllogistical_a combat_n and_o now_o see_v how_o he_o talk_v 1._o he_o call_v that_o my_o medium_n that_o be_v no_o medium_n at_o all_o but_o the_o predicate_a 2._o he_o say_v it_o be_v not_o in_o my_o minor_n where_o that_o predicate_v be_v not_o nor_o aught_o to_o be_v but_o another_o 3._o he_o take_v a_o expository_n parenthesis_n which_o be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o proposition_n for_o a_o addition_n that_o make_v ●…our_n term_n when_o i_o prove_v the_o church_n visible_a to_o prevent_v his_o cavil_n i_o put_v in_o a_o parenthesis_n as_o a_o margin_n in_o its_o part_n because_o the_o whole_a world_n or_o church_n be_v not_o see_v by_o any_o mortal_a man_n no_o not_o by_o the_o pope_n that_o pretend_v to_o rule_v it_o all_o and_o this_o no_o man_n controvert_v if_o he_o have_v say_v that_o there_o be_v less_o in_o the_o conclusion_n than_o in_o the_o premise_n he_o have_v speak_v sense_n though_o impertinet_fw-la while_o there_o be_v as_o much_o as_o be_v in_o the_o question_n 2_o he_o say_v i_o make_v the_o predicate_a of_o the_o minor_a the_o subject_n of_o the_o conclusion_n and_o then_o say_v this_n be_v a_o hopeful_a beginning_n answ._n o_o rare_a triumphant_a disputer_n why_o shall_v i_o not_o make_v the_o predicate_a of_o the_o minor_a the_o subject_n of_o the_o conclusion_n what_o law_n or_o reason_n be_v against_o it_o when_o i●…_n be_v the_o subject_n of_o the_o question_n my_o argument_n be_v a_o re_fw-mi definitâ_fw-la ad_fw-la rem_fw-la denominatam_fw-la as_o question_v the_o definition_n or_o res_fw-la quà_fw-la definita_fw-la be_v my_o medium_n how_o ridiculo●…s_n have_v this_o aristarchus_n make_v himself_o in_o his_o logic_n will_v not_o this_o dispute_v have_v be_v very_o edify_v to_o such_o as_o the_o lady_n that_o he_o and_o i_o be_v once_o to_o deal_v with_o when_o he_o will_v have_v bargain_v that_o never_o a_o word_n shall_v be_v speak_v by_o i_o nor_o write_v but_o in_o a_o syllogism_n as_o bad_a as_o popery_n be_v i_o hope_v it_o have_v some_o man_n of_o more_o ingenuity_n and_o honesty_n then_o wilful_o to_o delude_v the_o ignorant_a at_o these_o low_a and_o sordid_a rate_n §_o 7._o but_o from_o his_o play_n he_o turn_v in_o earnest_a to_o deny_v my_o major_n and_o say_v that_o protestant_n be_v no_o part_n of_o that_o church_n on_o earth_n of_o which_o christ_n be_v head_n and_o yet_o many_o of_o their_o doctor_n say_v that_o they_o that_o have_v no_o explicit_a belief_n that_o jesus_n be_v the_o christ_n but_o believe_v only_o a_o god_n the_o rewarder_n of_o work_n be_v member_n of_o the_o church_n but_o no_o christian_n be_v save_v papist_n just_o the_o donatist_n and_o worse_o than_o the_o quaker_n and_o anabaptist_n my_o argument_n those_o that_o profess_v the_o true_a christian_a religion_n in_o all_o its_o essential_o be_v member_n of_o that_o church_n which_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christian_n on_o earth_n subject_v to_o christ_n the_o head_n but_o protestant_n profess_v etc._n etc._n here_o 1._o he_o want_v form_n also_o all_n be_v want_v as_o if_o a_o definition_n be_v not_o universal_a or_o equipollent_a but_o if_o all_n be_v in_o he_o deny_v it_o because_o they_o may_v destroy_v the_o faith_n by_o a_o error_n answ._n he_o that_o so_o err_v as_o to_o deny_v any_o one_o essential_a part_n do_v not_o true_o profess_v to_o hold_v that_o essential_a part_n and_o so_o not_o the_o essence_n as_o he_o that_o deny_v christ_n to_o be_v god_n or_o man_n and_o yet_o will_v say_v in_o general_n that_o he_o be_v the_o messiah_n his_o meaning_n be_v that_o one_o that_o be_v not_o god_n or_o not_o man_n be_v the_o messiah_n which_o be_v not_o a_o profession_n of_o all_o essential_a to_o christianity_n but_o if_o he_o true_o profess_v all_o that_o be_v essential_a and_o ignorant_o think_v some_o error_n consistent_a with_o those_o essential_o which_o by_o consequence_n cross_v some_o of_o they_o and_o will_v abhor_v that_o error_n if_o he_o know_v it_o inconsistent_a this_o man_n be_v still_o a_o christian_n or_o else_o it_o be_v doubt_n whether_o there_o be_v one_o in_o the_o world_n if_o those_o doctor_n say_v true_a that_o say_v that_o theology_n be_v so_o harmonious_a a_o frame_n that_o the_o least_o moral_a error_n do_v by_o consequence_n cross_a and_o subvert_v fundamental_a truth_n certain_o abundance_n of_o such_o do_v so_o as_o be_v collect_v by_o montaltus_n and_o mr._n clarkson_n out_o of_o your_o jesuit_n and_o school_v doctor_n and_o as_o you_o find_v in_o one_o another_o but_o he_o bid_v i_o prove_v my_o major_n mark_v reader_n what_o i_o be_o put_v to_o prove_v 1._o either_o that_o profession_n denominate_v a_o professor_n it_o be_v only_a christian_n as_o visible_a by_o profession_n in_o question_n 2._o or_o that_o all_o the_o essential_a part_n do_v
constitute_v the_o essence_n and_o shall_v i_o obey_v a_o trifler_n so_o far_o as_o to_o trouble_v you_o with_o more_o syllogism_n for_o this_o §_o 8._o but_o he_o deny_v the_o minor_a and_o say_v that_o protestant_n profess_v not_o the_o true_a christian_a religion_n in_o all_o its_o essential_o i_o prove_v it_o thus_o those_o that_o profess_v so_o much_o as_o god_n have_v promise_v salvation_n upon_o in_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n do_v profess_v so_o much_o as_o god_n have_v etc._n etc._n here_o the_o trifler_n want_n all_o again_o and_o then_o deny_v the_o minor_n i_o prove_v the_o minor_a by_o several_a argument_n 1._o all_o that_o profess_v faith_n in_o god_n the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n our_o creator_n redeemer_n and_o sanctifier_n and_o love_n to_o he_o and_o absolute_a obedience_n to_o all_o his_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o holy_a scripture_n with_o willingness_n and_o diligence_n to_o know_v the_o true_a meaning_n of_o all_o these_o law_n as_o far_o as_o they_o be_v able_a and_o with_o repentance_n for_o all_o know_a sin_n do_v profess_v so_o much_o as_o god_n have_v promise_v salvation_n upon_o which_o i_o prove_v by_o many_o text_n of_o scripture_n but_o so_o do_v the_o protestant_n etc._n etc._n here_o the_o trifler_n want_v form_n again_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n be_v leave_v out_o when_o i_o cite_v the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n itself_o viz_o jo●…_n 3._o 16._o 17._o mark_v 16_o 16._o heb._n 5._o 9_o rom._n 8._o 28._o 1._o act._n 26._o 18._o and_o after_o all_o this_o what_o be_v it_o that_o he_o deny_v why_o this_o that_o the_o protestant_n have_v willingness_n and_o diligence_n to_o know_v the_o true_a meaning_n of_o all_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o scripture_n answ._n this_o be_v the_o man_n of_o form_n that_o sly_o put_v in_o having_n willingness_n instead_o of_o profess_v it_o when_o he_o see_v and_o know_v that_o it_o be_v not_o what_o say_v man_n have_v which_o god_n only_o know_v but_o what_o they_o pro●…ess_n that_o we_o dispute_v of_o and_o whether_o we_o profess_v such_o willingness_n to_o understand_v if_o our_o word_n our_o oath_n and_o all_o our_o book_n and_o confession_n publish_v to_o the_o world_n will_v not_o prove_v it_o let_v this_o man_n word_n go_v for_o a_o disproof_n we_o come_v now_o to_o the_o transubstantiation_n reason_v where_o all_o man_n eye_n and_o ear_n be_v to_o be_v deny_v §_o 9_o but_o he_o add_v a_o reason_n because_o else_o they_o will_v take_v the_o exposition_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o not_o follow_v novel_a int●…pretations_n and_o private_a judgement_n answ._n this_o cant_n must_v delude_v the_o ignorant_a that_o never_o read_v the_o history_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o know_v the_o present_a state_n of_o the_o world_n 1._o do_v not_o we_o profess_v to_o prefer_v that_o which_o be_v most_o ancient_a before_o that_o which_o be_v novel_a but_o these_o man_n must_v have_v we_o e._n g._n believe_v that_o the_o cup_n may_v be_v leave_v out_o of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o eucharist_n which_o a_o sect_n late_o and_o sacrilegious_o introduce_v or_o else_o we_o have_v a_o novel_a and_o private_a interpretation_n of_o the_o sacrament_n when_o the_o most_o brazen_a face_v of_o they_o can_v deny_v that_o their_o own_o way_n herein_o be_v novel_a and_o the_o contrary_a as_o old_a as_o christ_n institution_n and_o that_o they_o be_v singular_a as_o differ_v from_o the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o christian_n upon_o earth_n the_o same_o i_o may_v say_v of_o most_o other_o of_o our_o difference_n 2._o when_o do_v the_o universal_a church_n write_v a_o commentary_n on_o the_o bible_n where_o shall_v we_o find_v their_o exposition_n of_o it_o how_o little_a of_o the_o bible_n have_v general_a council_n expound_v if_o you_o mean_v not_o they_o what_o mean_v you_o sure_o all_o your_o laity_n have_v not_o expound_v it_o nor_o all_o your_o clergy_n yea_o their_o commentary_n yea_o and_o translation_n fight_v with_o one_o another_o where_o be_v your_o universal_a commentary_n if_o you_o have_v such_o a_o work_n will_v your_o talk_n make_v we_o ignorant_a that_o papist_n be_v not_o a_o three_o part_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n but_o if_o it_o be_v council_n you_o mean_v which_o of_o they_o be_v it_o that_o we_o must_v believe_v and_o why_o that_o at_o constance_n and_o basil_n and_o pisa_n or_o that_o at_o florence_n or_o the_o later●…ne_a that_o de_fw-fr fide_fw-la contradict_v they_o the_o first_o and_o second_o at_o ephesus_n or_o that_o of_o chalcedon_n which_o contradict_v the_o first_o indeed_o and_o the_o second_o profess_o the_o 28_o canon_n of_o chalcedon_n or_o the_o pope_n that_o abhor_v it_o the_o general_a council_n at_o ariminum_n syrmium_fw-la etc._n etc._n when_o the_o world_n be_v say_v to_o groan_v to_o find_v itself_o turn_v arrian_n shall_v we_o at_o the_o 2d_o council_z of_o ephesus_z have_v follow_v the_o great_a number_n when_o there_o be_v not_o one_o refuser_n of_o eutychianism_n save_o the_o pope_n legate_n and_o binnius_n say_v that_o sola_fw-la navicula_fw-la petri_n only_a peter_n ship_n escape_v drown_v do_v rome_n follow_v the_o most_o when_o melch._n canus_n tell_v we_o that_o most_o of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o arm_n of_o emperor_n have_v fight_v against_o the_o roman_a privilege_n be_v it_o a_o convince_a way_n to_o have_v such_o a_o pope_n as_o eugenius_n four_o at_o the_o same_o time_n to_o differ_v from_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o also_o be_v damn_v by_o his_o own_o church_n or_o general_n council_n and_o to_o say_v you_o do_v not_o receive_v all_o that_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n nor_o be_v willing_a to_o know_v the_o truth_n because_o you_o take_v not_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n when_o you_o have_v blind_v we_o so_o far_o as_o to_o take_v a_o domineer_a sect_n that_o live_v not_o by_o the_o word_n but_o by_o the_o sword_n and_o blood_n to_o be_v the_o universal_a church_n and_o all_o your_o decretal_n to_o be_v the_o church_n exposition_n of_o scripture_n and_o all_o the_o scripture_n and_o father_n that_o be_v against_o you_o to_o be_v novelty_n and_o your_o many_o novelty_n to_o be_v all_o the_o ancient_a truth_n such_o as_o pet._n moulin_n de_fw-fr novitate_fw-la papismi_fw-la have_v lay_v open_a by_o that_o time_n we_o may_v think_v that_o the_o church_n want_v a_o essential_a art●…ole_n of_o christianity_n which_o take_v not_o all_o the_o pope_n exposition_n of_o scripture_n but_o see_v this_o be_v the_o great_a damn_v charge_n against_o the_o protestant_n faith_n i_o pray_v you_o tell_v we_o next_o 1._o do_v all_o the_o christian_a church_n want_v a_o essential_a part_n of_o their_o christianity_n in_o all_o those_o age_n before_o the_o universal_a church_n give_v they_o any_o exposition_n of_o the_o scripture_n what_o exposition_n have_v they_o beside_o each_o church_n pastor_n for_o the_o first_o 300_o year_n and_o what_o exposition_n do_v the_o council_n of_o nice_a make_v save_v about_o the_o deity_n of_o christ_n and_o easter_n day_n or_o such_o thing_n that_o indeed_o be_v deliver_v not_o as_o exposition_n of_o scripture_n but_o tradition_n of_o rule_n of_o order_n and_o what_o exposition_n make_v any_o of_o the_o old_a general_n council_n save_v about_o the_o nature_n and_o person_n and_o will_n of_o christ_n and_o church_n policy_n which_o suarez_n de_fw-fr legi●…_n say_v god_n make_v no_o law_n for_o where_o be_v their_o commentary_n 3._o where_o shall_v we_o find_v any_o commentary_n that_o the_o father_n agree_v in_o though_o the_o trent-oath_n be_v that_o you_o will_v not_o exp●…nd_v the_o scripture_n but_o according_a to_o the_o father_n consent_n your_o writer_n tell_v we_o that_o most_o who_o work_n be_v come_v to_o we_o for_o the_o first_o 300_o year_n be_v millenaries_n dionys._n petavius_n have_v gather_v the_o word_n of_o arrian_n doctrine_n from_o most_o of_o they_o lib._n de_fw-la trinit_fw-la till_o after_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a yea_o that_o the_o chief_a of_o the_o anti-arrians_a even_o athanassus_fw-la himself_o supposit●…_n be_v for_o three_o god_n tell_v we_o that_o as_o peter_n paul_n and_o john_n be_v three_o name_n but_o one_o in_o essence_n that_o be_v in_o specie_fw-la so_o be_v the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n when_o your_o doctor_n tell_v we_o that_o justin_n clem._n alexander_n dionysius_n alexand._n talianus_fw-la tertullian_n cyprian_n origen_n eysebius_fw-la and_o i_o know_v not_o how_o many_o more_o teach_v heresy_n and_o chrysostom_n basil_n and_o many_o other_o that_o we_o hope_v have_v be_v christian_n be_v note_v as_o fautor_n of_o origen_n and_o even_o many_o of_o the_o martyr_n be_v heretic_n when_o through_o the_o reign_n of_o theodosius_n senior_n arcadius_n and_o honorius_n theodosius_n junior_n valentinian_n to_o say_v nothing_o of_o constantius_n and_o valens_n etc._n etc._n of_o
church_n still_o three_o hundred_o year_n before_o there_o be_v any_o general_a council_n as_o well_o as_o the_o scripture_n and_o why_o do_v not_o hierome_n chrysostome_n augustine_n etc._n etc._n exhort_v me●…_n and_o woman_n to_o read_v the_o council_n as_o much_o as_o the_o scripture_n at_o least_o methinks_v you_o shall_v allow_v the_o scripture_n a_o equality_n with_o council_n but_o if_o god_n have_v speak_v that_o which_o be_v nonsense_n or_o unintelligible_a till_o council_n or_o lope_n expound_v it_o scripture_n be_v far_o from_o have_v such_o equality_n then_o paul_n and_o peter_n speak_v not_o intelligible_o but_o p._n paul_n 4_o and_o 5._o and_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n do_v then_o council_n may_v save_v they_o that_o know_v not_o scripture_n but_o scripture_n can_v save_v they_o that_o know_v not_o the_o council_n and_o do_v all_o the_o papist_n man_n and_o woman_n know_v the_o council_n in_o short_a if_o a_o tyrannical_a sect_n of_o priest_n can_v get_v this_o monopoly_n or_o peculiar_a of_o expound_v all_o god_n law_n and_o word_n so_o that_o the_o scripture_n will_v not_o save_v any_o but_o by_o their_o exposition_n it_o will_v become_v more_o the_o word_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o council_n than_o of_o god_n and_o when_o all_o be_v do_v every_o priest_n must_v be_v the_o pope_n and_o council_n to_o we_o that_o never_o see_v they_o and_o must_v be_v the_o immediate_a object_n of_o our_o infallible_a belief_n and_o if_o the_o pope_n can_v so_o communicate_v to_o so_o great_a a_o swarm_n the_o sweetness_n of_o participate_v in_o his_o universal_a dominion_n and_o infallibility_n no_o wonder_n if_o self-love_n bid_v they_o serve_v his_o usurpation_n but_o by_o that_o time_n every_o woman_n must_v be_v sure_a 1._o that_o the_o pope_n be_v christ_n vicar_n general_n indeed_o 2._o that_o with_o a_o council_n he_o be_v infallible_a 3._o and_o that_o god_n revelation_n must_v be_v receive_v only_o on_o this_o deliverer_n authority_n 4._o and_o the_o sense_n of_o all_o on_o his_o exposition_n 5._o and_o know_v how_o man_n believe_v the_o first_o three_o hundred_o year_n before_o such_o pope_n or_o council_n ever_o be_v 6._o and_o can_v tell_v certain_o which_o council_n be_v true_a and_o which_o false_a and_o which_o of_o they_o must_v be_v believe_v and_o which_o not_o 7._o and_o be_v sure_a that_o every_o priest_n do_v infallible_o report_v all_o this_o to_o she_o 8._o and_o do_v give_v a_o true_a exposition_n of_o each_o council_n before_o another_o council_n do_v expound_v they_o 9_o and_o be_v sure_a that_o she_o have_v all_o that_o those_o council_n have_v make_v necessary_a and_o have_v not_o have_v a_o sufficient_a proposal_n of_o more_o i_o say_v by_o that_o time_n all_o this_o certainty_n be_v attain_v the_o popish_a faith_n will_v appear_v to_o be_v hard_a work_n than_o they_o think_v that_o hear_v deceiver_n say_v believe_v as_o the_o church_n believe_v and_o you_o shall_v be_v save_v judge_v how_o far_o the_o pope_n exalt_v himself_o above_o god_n when_o it_o be_v thus_o confident_o tell_v we_o that_o we_o nor_o no_o man_n believe_v with_o a_o divine_a and_o save_v faith_n any_o one_o word_n of_o god_n if_o we_o believe_v it_o mere_o because_o god_n have_v give_v it_o we_o in_o the_o seal_a scripture_n and_o add_v not_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o papal_a church_n §_o 12._o my_o next_o argument_n be_v those_o that_o explicit_o profess_v the_o belief_n of_o all_o that_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o church_n creed_n for_o six_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n and_o much_o more_o holy_a truth_n and_o implicit_o to_o believe_v all_o that_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o to_o be_v willing_a and_o diligent_a for_o the_o explicit_a knowledge_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n with_o a_o resolution_n to_o obey_v all_o the_o will_n of_o god_n which_o they_o know_v do_v profess_v the_o true_a christian_a religion_n in_o all_o its_o essential_o but_o so_o do_v the_o protestant_n etc._n etc._n here_o again_o the_o formalist_n want_v form_n a_o enumeration_n of_o particular_n in_o a_o description_n be_v not_o equal_a to_o a_o universal_a with_o he_o unless_o he_o read_v all_o and_o then_o he_o deny_v the_o major_a 1._o because_o our_o general_n profession_n be_v contradict_v in_o particular_n answ._n 1._o bare_a accusation_n without_o proof_n be_v more_o easy_a than_o honest_a 2._o there_o be_v a_o contradiction_n direct_v and_o understand_v which_o prove_v that_o the_o truth_n be_v not_o believe_v and_o a_o contradiction_n by_o consequence_n not_o understand_v which_o stand_v with_o a_o belief_n of_o the_o truth_n the_o latter_a all_o man_n in_o the_o world_n have_v that_o have_v any_o moral_a error_n 3._o o_o what_o self-condemning_a man_n be_v these_o how_o certain_o have_v a_o papist_n no_o true_a faith_n if_o abundance_n of_o contrary_a error_n nullify_v faith_n his_o second_o reason_n be_v you_o distinguish_v not_o between_o implicit_o contain_v in_o general_a principle_n and_o explicit_o contain_v in_o the_o creed_n and_o scripture_n answ._n a_o very_a logical_a answer_n to_o what_o purpose_n shall_v i_o do_v it_o his_o three_o be_v the_o strength_n creed_n and_o scripture_n be_v not_o enough_o tradition_n and_o general_a council_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n must_v be_v believe_v answ._n 1._o i_o will_v matter_n of_o practice_n be_v more_o at_o liberty_n that_o prince_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o murder_n or_o exterminate_v all_o their_o subject_n as_o heretic_n that_o will_v not_o be_v heretic_n and_o inhuman_a and_o to_o rebel_v perfidious_o against_o those_o prince_n that_o be_v sentence_v by_o his_o holiness_n for_o not_o do_v it_o 2._o alas_o who_o can_v be_v save_v on_o these_o man_n term_n if_o the_o belief_n of_o all_o the_o creed_n and_o all_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o a_o faith_n big_a enough_o to_o save_v he_o and_o yet_o perhaps_o you_o may_v hear_v again_o that_o man_n may_v be_v save_v without_o any_o of_o all_o this_o save_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v a_o reward_v god_n and_o that_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o subject_n be_v the_o infallible_a church_n universal_a and_o it_o be_v but_o prove_v a_o insufficient_a proposal_n and_o we_o be_v deliver_v from_o tradition_n council_n scripture_n creed_n and_o all_o and_o never_o be_v the_o proposal_n of_o council_n more_o insufficient_a than_o when_o council_n be_v most_o frequent_a when_o in_o the_o reign_n of_o constantius_n valens_n valentinian_n theodosius_n arcadius_n and_o honorius_n good_a theodosius_n junior_a marcian_n leo_n zeno_n anastasius_n justin_n justinian_n and_o long_o after_o anathematise_v one_o general_n council_n and_o cry_v up_o another_o and_o set_v council_n against_o council_n be_v too_o much_o of_o the_o religion_n of_o those_o time_n 4._o again_o he_o deny_v that_o protestant_n not_o excuse_v by_o invincible_a ignorance_n believe_v any_o article_n with_o a_o save_v faith_n answ._n easie_n dispute_v can_v a_o quaker_n say_v so_o too_o by_o we_o and_o you_o but_o how_o unhappy_a a_o thing_n be_v knowledge_n then_o and_o how_o bless_v a_o thing_n be_v invincible_a ignorance_n which_o may_v prevent_v so_o many_o man_n damnation_n §_o 13._o i_o prove_v the_o major_a by_o the_o express_a testimony_n of_o many_o papist_n ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la to_o which_o he_o say_v it_o be_v to_o no_o purpose_n for_o our_o question_n be_v not_o of_o what_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v express_o only_a but_o of_o what_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v both_o express_o and_o implicit_o of_o all_o christian_n respective_o answ._n reader_n judge_n with_o what_o ingenuity_n these_o man_n dispute_v and_o how_o they_o make_v nothing_o of_o give_v up_o all_o their_o cause_n and_o yet_o cant_v on_o with_o any_o of_o the_o most_o senseless_a word_n he_o have_v large_o enough_o tell_v we_o before_o that_o the_o belief_n of_o general_n truth_n explicit_o be_v the_o implicit_a belief_n of_o the_o contain_v particular_n though_o unknown_a to_o the_o believer_n i_o be_o now_o prove_v that_o protestant_n explicit_a faith_n leave_v out_o no_o article_n necessary_a to_o be_v explicit_o believe_v to_o this_o end_n i_o cite_v bellarmine_n and_o costerus_n and_o after_o many_o other_o confess_v what_o i_o say_v in_o plain_a word_n even_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o our_o enumeration_n he_o deny_v none_o of_o my_o proof_n as_o to_o explicit_a belief_n and_o do_v we_o need_v any_o more_o be_v not_o all_o that_o which_o he_o call_v explicit_a belief_n the_o mere_a denomination_n of_o the_o explicite_fw-la from_o the_o particular_n employ_v in_o it_o can_v any_o man_n want_v a_o implicit_a belief_n that_o want_v no_o explicite_fw-la belief_n if_o i_o be_o not_o bind_v explicit_o to_o believe_v that_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o council_n be_v the_o universal_a church_n or_o the_o infallible_a deliverer_n of_o tradition_n or_o expounder_n of_o scripture_n or_o my_o rightful_a governor_n how_o be_o i_o
10._o ad_fw-la 11._o 5._o scatus_fw-la in_o prolegom_n in_o sect_n 1._o 6._o greg._n armin._n in_o prol._n e._n g._n q._n 1._o art_n 2._o resp._n fol._n 3_o &_o 4._o 7._o guil._n parisian_n de_fw-fr legib._n c._n 16._o p._n 46._o 8._o bellarmine_n again_o de_fw-la verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la li._n 10._o c._n 10._o ad_fw-la arg_n 5._o etc._n etc._n and_o then_o i_o most_o full_o prove_v it_o out_o of_o the_o ancient_a church-doctor_n but_o to_o all_o these_o he_o give_v such_o frivolous_a answer_n that_o it_o irk_v i_o to_o weary_a the_o reader_n by_o repeat_v and_o answer_v they_o and_o he_o that_o will_v faithful_o peruse_v the_o author_n word_n i_o think_v will_n either_o need_v no_o other_o confutation_n of_o he_o or_o be_v uncapable_a of_o understand_v one_o when_o he_o see_v it_o the_o fore-confuted_n contradiction_n of_o sufficient_a explicit_a and_o yet_o not_o sufficient_a implicit_a be_v the_o chief_a and_o next_o a_o vain_a supposition_n that_o to_o say_v that_o scripture_n be_v sufficient_a to_o all_o theological_a point_n and_o conclusion_n be_v less_o than_o to_o say_v it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o necessary_a article_n of_o faith_n and_o if_o any_o of_o they_o speak_v of_o the_o church_n exposition_n he_o deny_v the_o scripture-sufficiency_n as_o a_o rule_n and_o yet_o their_o council_n need_v exposition_n too_o §_o 22._o iii_o my_o 3d._a argument_n for_o our_o church_n perpetual_a visibility_n be_v if_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o christian_n though_o not_o as_o papal_n have_v be_v visible_a ever_o since_o the_o day_n of_o the_o apostle_n than_o the_o church_n of_o which_o the_o protestant_n be_v member_n have_v be_v visible_a ever_o since_o the_o day_n of_o the_o apostle_n but_o the_o antecedent_n be_v their_o own_o therefore_o they_o may_v not_o deny_v the_o consequent_a here_o he_o want_v form_n again_o because_o as_o christian_n be_v in_o the_o antecedent_n and_o not_o in_o the_o sequel_n answ._n he_o may_v have_v see_v that_o it_o be_v but_o a_o expository_n term_v in_o a_o parenthesis_n and_o so_o the_o same_o exposition_n in_o the_o consequent_a be_v suppose_v next_o he_o say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o fallacy_n a_o secundum_fw-la quid_fw-la ad_fw-la simpliciter_fw-la answ._n so_o then_o the_o church_n as_o christian_n be_v not_o the_o christian_a church_n but_o secundum_fw-la quid_fw-la but_o we_o that_o know_v no_o other_o profess_v to_o be_v of_o no_o other_o nor_o to_o prove_v the_o visibility_n of_o any_o other_o than_o the_o church_n as_o christian._n let_v they_o prove_v more_o that_o pretend_v to_o any_o other_o next_o he_o say_v that_o the_o protestant_n have_v be_v visible_a as_o christian_n be_v all_o that_o can_v be_v pretend_v and_o yet_o that_o also_o he_o deny_v for_o they_o believe_v not_o one_o article_n with_o a_o infallible_a supernatural_a divine_a faith_n answ._n 1._o the_o question_n be_v whether_o they_o profess_v not_o so_o to_o do_v nay_o rather_o whether_o their_o objective_a faith_n that_o be_v all_o the_o creed_n and_o holy_a scripture_n be_v not_o infallible_a of_o supernatural_a revelation_n and_o divine_a he_o that_o deny_v this_o seem_v a_o infidel_n but_o if_o all_o the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n must_v have_v a_o actual_a subjective_n faith_n that_o be_v of_o supernatural_a divine_a infusion_n then_o 1._o no_o hypocrite_n be_v a_o church-member_n 2._o and_o no_o man_n can_v know_v who_o be_v a_o church-member_n beside_o himself_o 3._o and_o so_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v invisible_a this_o be_v clear_a 2._o i_o must_v not_o too_o oft_o write_v the_o same_o thing_n if_o the_o reader_n will_v peruse_v a_o small_a tract_n of_o my_o call_v the_o certainty_n of_o christianity_n without_o popery_n he_o shall_v soon_o see_v whether_o the_o papist_n faith_n or_o we_o be_v the_o more_o certain_a and_o divine_a of_o which_o also_o i_o have_v say_v more_o in_o my_o treatise_n call_v the_o safe_a religion_n and_o mr._n pool_n in_o his_o nullity_n of_o the_o roman_a faith_n §_o 23._o i_o here_o show_v that_o have_v prove_v our_o visibility_n as_o christian_a i_o need_v not_o prove_v a_o visibility_n as_o papal_n any_o more_o than_o he_o that_o will_v prove_v his_o humane_a genealogy_n have_v some_o leprous_a ancestor_n need_v to_o prove_v that_o all_o be_v leprous_a here_o he_o deny_v popery_n to_o be_v leprosy_n and_o again_o false_o tell_v we_o that_o if_o it_o be_v so_o all_o the_o visible_a church_n in_o the_o world_n be_v leprous_a which_o need_v no_o more_o confutation_n than_o be_v oft_o give_v it_o §_o 24._o he_o tell_v i_o how_o a_o 1500_o the_o pope_n be_v in_o possession_n and_o we_o dispossess_v he_o without_o order_n etc._n etc._n answ._n a_o old_a cant_n but_o 1._o i_o have_v full_o prove_v that_o he_o never_o be_v in_o possession_n of_o the_o government_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n 2._o nor_o in_o the_o empire_n or_o any_o other_o prince_n dominion_n but_o by_o humane_a donation_n and_o consent_n as_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n be_v in_o england_n 3._o and_o that_o they_o that_o give_v he_o that_o power_n may_v on_o just_a reason_n take_v it_o away_o and_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o another_o prince_n country_n can_v stand_v here_o by_o his_o authority_n when_o he_o have_v lose_v the_o government_n of_o england_n himself_o §_o 25._o iv._o my_o four_o argument_n add_v more_o than_o my_o thesis_n require_v viz._n if_o there_o have_v be_v since_o the_o day_n of_o christ_n a_o christian_a church_n that_o be_v not_o subject_a to_o the_o roman_a pope_n as_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n and_o universal_a head_n and_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n than_o the_o church_n of_o which_o the_o protestant_n be_v member_n have_v be_v visible_a both_o in_o its_o be_v and_o in_o its_o freedom_n from_o popery_n but_o the_o antecedent_n be_v true_a ergo_fw-la so_o be_v the_o consequent_a to_o this_o 1._o he_o want_v the_o word_n ever_o in_o the_o antecedent_n and_o yet_o before_o abate_v it_o but_o he_o know_v that_o since_o be_v put_v for_o ever_o since_o 2._o he_o say_v i_o suppose_v that_o the_o sole_a denial_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n constitute_v the_o church_n whereof_o the_o protestant_n be_v member_n answ._n in_o despite_n of_o my_o frequent_a profession_n to_o the_o contrary_a who_o still_o tell_v he_o that_o our_o christianity_n and_o relation_n to_o christ_n and_o one_o another_o make_v we_o church-member_n and_o our_o freedom_n from_o the_o papacy_n be_v our_o renunciation_n of_o a_o usurper_n §_o 26._o i_o prove_v my_o antecedent_n 1._o from_o the_o express_a word_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n can_v 28_o which_o he_o answer_v as_o before_o where_o he_o be_v consute_v §_o 27._o 2._o my_o 2d_o proof_n be_v from_o the_o silence_n of_o the_o ancient_a writer_n tertullian_n cyprian_n athan._n nazianzen_n nissene_n basil_n optatus_n augustine_n etc._n etc._n that_o use_v not_o this_o argument_n of_o pope_n power_n over_o all_o the_o world_n as_o of_o divine_a right_n to_o confute_v the_o heretic_n that_o they_o have_v to_o do_v with_o when_o two_o word_n have_v expeditious_o do_v all_o if_o this_o have_v then_o be_v believe_v here_o he_o say_v their_o author_n have_v prove_v that_o the_o father_n do_v so_o answ._n soon_o say_v and_o as_o soon_o deny_v the_o book_n be_v in_o our_o hand_n as_o well_o as_o you_o i_o will_v now_o instance_n but_o in_o cyprian_n and_o the_o african_a church_n in_o his_o day_n and_o in_o augustine_n and_o the_o same_o church_n in_o his_o day_n 1._o do_v cyprian_n and_o his_o council_n believe_v stephen_n universal_a monarchy_n when_o he_o oppose_v his_o judgement_n with_o so_o much_o vehemency_n and_o set_v the_o scripture_n against_o his_o plea_n from_o tradition_n let_v he_o that_o will_v read_v his_o epistle_n of_o this_o too_o long_o to_o be_v recite_v believe_v it_o if_o he_o can_v and_o when_o he_o twit_v his_o arrogance_n in_o council_n with_o nemo_fw-la nostrum_fw-la se_fw-la dicit_fw-la episcopum_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la 2._o the_o plea_n of_o aurelius_n augustine_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o african_a bishop_n i_o have_v former_o recite_v of_o which_o harding_n say_v that_o the_o african_n seduce_v by_o aurelius_n continue_v twenty_o year_n in_o schism_n from_o rome_n and_o do_v augustine_n and_o all_o the_o rest_n then_o believe_v the_o pope_n sovereignty_n even_o in_o the_o empire_n i_o do_v plain_o show_v that_o if_o the_o donatis●…s_n novatian_o and_o all_o such_o sect_n have_v believe_v the_o roman_a sovereignty_n and_o infallibility_n they_o have_v not_o so_o differ_v from_o they_o if_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v it_o the_o father_n will_v have_v take_v the_o near_a way_n and_o write_v their_o volume_n to_o convince_v they_o that_o this_o papal_a rule_n be_v it_o that_o must_v end_v all_o their_o controversy_n instead_o of_o write_v voluminous_o from_o scripture_n and_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o
cause_n which_o they_o do_v not_o §_o 28._o my_o 3d._a proof_n be_v this_o the_o tradition_n witness_v by_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n say_v that_o the_o papal_a vicarship_n or_o sovereignty_n be_v a_o innovation_n and_o usurpation_n and_o that_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v many_o hundred_o year_n without_o it_o therefore_o there_o be_v then_o no_o such_o papat_fw-la church_n here_o the_o man_n be_v angry_a and_o say_v it_o be_v a_o abominable_a untruth_n set_v down_o by_o a_o forehead_n of_o brass_n a_o man_n in_o his_o right_a wit_n will_v not_o have_v the_o confidence_n to_o utter_v so_o loud_a a_o falsehood_n and_o all_o the_o world_n will_v see_v that_o i_o be_o one_o of_o the_o most_o unsufferabl_a out-facers_a of_o truth_n and_o asserter_n of_o open_a falsehood_n that_o ever_o set_a pen_n to_o paper_n yea_o it_o bring_v in_o the_o talk_n of_o rebellion_n against_o his_o majesty_n etc._n etc._n answ._n the_o apprehension_n of_o man_n be_v very_o different_a when_o read_v its_o like_a the_o same_o book_n leave_v i_o past_a doubt_n on_o one_o side_n and_o he_o so_o vehement_o confident_a on_o the_o other_o my_o proof_n be_v this_o 1._o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n do_v now_o deny_v the_o papal_a universal_a sovereignty_n 2._o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n do_v suppose_v and_o say_v that_o they_o hold_v herein_o to_o the_o ancient_a truth_n which_o be_v deliver_v down_o from_o the_o apostle_n 3._o therefore_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n do_v hold_v that_o the_o ancient_a truth_n deliver_v from_o the_o apostle_n do_v teach_v they_o to_o deny_v the_o pope_n universal_a sovereignty_n and_o consequent_o that_o it_o be_v a_o innovation_n and_o usurpation_n i._o as_o to_o the_o first_o it_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o present_a fact_n such_o as_o whether_o most_o of_o england_n speak_v english_a 1._o that_o the_o great_a empire_n of_o abassia_n renounce_v the_o pope_n and_o plead_v tradition_n for_o it_o godignus_n the_o jesuit_n beside_o other_o full_o testify_v and_o justify_v pet._n maffeius_n ribade_n nica_n and_o other_o jesuit_n against_o 〈◊〉_d new_a author_n that_o false_o say_v they_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o pope_n he_o tell_v we_o that_o they_o take_v the_o roman_n for_o nestorian_a heretic_n p._n 318._o 328._o etc._n etc._n and_o that_o they_o resolve_v never_o to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o pope_n that_o he_o that_o tell_v they_o otherwise_o misinform_v they_o yea_o say_v one_o of_o the_o jesuit_n pag._n 330._o i_o think_v the_o emperor_n have_v rather_o be_v under_o the_o hard_a yoke_n of_o the_o saracen_n than_o under_o the_o mild_a and_o gentle_a empire_n emperor_n of_o the_o roman_a pope_n it_o be_v true_a that_o many_o error_n they_o have_v and_o many_o more_o be_v charge_v on_o they_o which_o they_o deny_v and_o believe_v that_o dioscorus_n be_v the_o true_a follower_n of_o cyril_n and_o the_o council_n of_o ephes._n and_o that_o leo_n and_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n be_v nestorian_n of_o which_o more_o anon_o they_o be_v for_o dioscorus_n against_o leo_n and_o the_o council_n but_o few_o if_o any_o of_o they_o understand_v the_o bottom_n of_o that_o controversy_n and_o the_o emperor_n tell_v the_o jesuit_n that_o he_o false_o charge_v error_n on_o they_o and_o his_o mother_n say_v see_v your_o faith_n and_o we_o do_v nothing_o differ_v but_o be_v the_o same_o why_o do_v you_o write_v to_o trouble_v quiet_a mind_n without_o cause_n the_o jesuit_n answer_v i_o certain_o affirm_v to_o your_o majesty_n that_o if_o you_o have_v no_o other_o error_n this_o one_o that_o you_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n on_o earth_n be_v enough_o and_o too_o much_o to_o your_o everlasting_a destruction_n ii_o to_o this_o she_o reply_v that_o she_o and_o her_o country_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o apostle_n peter_n and_o paul_n and_o first_o to_o christ_n himself_o the_o jesuit_n answer_v i_o deny_v that_o they_o be_v subject_a to_o christ_n that_o be_v not_o subject_a to_o his_o vicar_n say_v she_o neither_o i_o nor_o i_o deny_v obedience_n to_o st._n peter_n we_o be_v now_o in_o the_o same_o faith_n that_o we_o be_v in_o from_o the_o beginning_n if_o that_o be_v not_o right_a why_o for_o so_o many_o age_n and_o generation_n be_v there_o no_o man_n find_v that_o will_v warn_v we_o of_o our_o error_n he_o answer_v the_o pope_n of_o rome_n that_o be_v the_o pastor_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n can_v not_o in_o the_o year_n pass_v send_v tea●…hers_n into_o abassia_n &c_n &c_n she_o answer_v to_o change_v the_o old_a custom_n and_o rite_n and_o receive_v new_a one_o be_v a_o matter_n full_a of_o danger_n and_o offence_n he_o answer_v that_o their_o faith_n be_v old_a and_o have_v nothing_o new_a etc._n etc._n p._n 323_o 324_o 325._o the_o emperor_n also_o speak_v to_o the_o like_a purpose_n p._n 319._o 320_o 321._o so_o that_o it_o be_v confess_v by_o the_o jesuit_n and_o best_a information_n from_o abassia_n 1._o that_o they_o abhor_v or_o refuse_v the_o papal_a government_n 2._o and_o that_o for_o this_o they_o plead_v tradition_n and_o antiquity_n and_o the_o same_o be_v notorious_a of_o the_o greek_a armenian_a and_o other_o oriental_a church_n how_o large_a they_o be_v in_o the_o east_n when_o jacobus_n de_fw-fr vitriaco_n be_v there_o i_o have_v former_o show_v out_o of_o his_o word_n who_o say_v that_o those_o eastern_a christian_n be_v more_o than_o either_o the_o greek_a or_o latin_a church_n and_o as_o the_o greek_n anathematise_v the_o pope_n every_o year_n so_o the_o rest_n be_v know_v to_o reject_v he_o to_o say_v that_o these_o be_v heretic_n and_o not_o the_o church_n be_v but_o to_o beg_v the_o question_n and_o fit_a for_o contempt_n than_o a_o answer_n that_o all_o such_o rejecter_n of_o the_o papacy_n be_v the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o profess_a christian_n be_v past_a doubt_n 2._o and_o that_o greek_n armenian_n etc._n etc._n plead_v tradition_n and_o the_o judgement_n and_o custom_n of_o their_o forefather_n for_o what_o they_o hold_v be_v so_o far_o past_a question_n that_o i_o will_v not_o vain_o waste_v time_n in_o cite_v author_n to_o prove_v it_o even_o the_o papist_n confess_v it_o when_o they_o tell_v we_o that_o these_o church_n join_v with_o they_o in_o plead_v for_o tradition_n be_v not_o then_o the_o consequence_n clear_a which_o w._n 1_n be_v so_o angry_a at_o i_o know_v not_o what_o can_v be_v say_v against_o it_o unless_o that_o both_o the_o greek_n and_o protestant_n do_v confess_v that_o once_o they_o be_v under_o the_o pope_n but_o the_o greek_n say_v that_o they_o be_v never_o under_o he_o as_o a_o governor_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n set_v up_o by_o god_n but_o as_o the_o primate_n of_o one_o empire_n set_v up_o by_o man_n upon_o such_o reason_n the_o seat_n of_o the_o empire_n as_o be_v alterable_a as_o well_o as_o unnecessary_a i_o have_v prove_v this_o full_o before_o 1._o from_o the_o word_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n 2._o from_o their_o equal_v and_o after_o prefer_v the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n who_o pretend_v not_o to_o a_o divine_a right_n and_o that_o as_o over_o all_o the_o world_n and_o they_o be_v not_o so_o blind_a as_o to_o set_v up_o a_o humane_a law_n above_o that_o which_o they_o believe_v to_o be_v divine_a many_o other_o proof_n i_o give_v and_o even_o the_o protestant_n hold_v that_o in_o reject_v the_o papacy_n they_o follow_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n however_o some_o country_n where_o they_o live_v and_o their_o progenitor_n fall_v under_o the_o papal_a error_n or_o terror_n there_o be_v some_o late_a papist_n that_o think_v that_o what_o be_v hold_v in_o this_o age_n be_v certain_o hold_v in_o the_o former_a and_o that_o no_o country_n tradition_n can_v be_v false_a which_o be_v contrary_a to_o all_o experience_n but_o if_o other_o country_n tradition_n may_v be_v false_a so_o may_v the_o roman_a niceph._n say_v of_o the_o armenian_n they_o do_v these_o thing_n from_o tradition_n which_o rest_v on_o no_o reason_n and_o their_o ancient_a legislator_n and_o doctor_n do_v calumnious_o boast_v that_o gregory_n the_o bishop_n of_o great_a armenia_n deliver_v they_o by_o hand_n &c_n &c_n l._n 18._o c._n 54._o and_o the_o abassian_o that_o receive_v the_o gospel_n from_o the_o eunuch_n and_o st._n matthew_n be_v before_o too_o much_o addict_v to_o some_o jewish_a ceremony_n and_o never_o cure_v of_o they_o retain_v they_o as_o by_o tradition_n to_o this_o day_n and_o it_o be_v know_v how_o tradition_n differ_v about_o easter-day_n and_o the_o millenaries_n opinion_n by_o all_o this_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o most_o of_o the_o christian_a world_n take_v the_o
religion_n which_o they_o hold_v to_o be_v that_o which_o by_o tradition_n the_o church_n receive_v for_o the_o apostle_n and_o therefore_o most_o be_v against_o the_o papacy_n think_v tradition_n be_v against_o it_o and_o the_o tradition_n of_o two_o part_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n especial_o those_o next_o jerusalem_n be_v more_o regardable_a as_o such_o than_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o three_o part_n only_o that_o be_v contrary_a unless_o better_a historical_a proof_n make_v a_o difference_n §_o 29._o 4._o my_o four_o proof_n be_v many_o church_n without_o the_o virge_z of_o the_o roman_a empire_n never_o subject_v themselves_o to_o rome_n and_o many_o not_o of_o many_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n ergo_fw-la there_o be_v visible_a church_n from_o the_o begin_n to_o this_o day_n that_o be_v not_o for_o the_o roman_a vicarship_n to_o this_o he_o say_v if_o i_o can_v prove_v as_o i_o have_v prove_v that_o any_o one_o extra-imperial_a church_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o you_o can_v show_v some_o evident_a reason_n why_o that_o be_v subject_a rather_o than_o all_o the_o rest_n i_o convince_v by_o that_o the_o subjection_n of_o all_o now_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o church_n of_o spain_n france_n britain_n of_o france_n and_o germany_n when_o divide_v from_o the_o roman_a empire_n be_v as_o subject_a as_o the_o rest_n etc._n etc._n answ._n 1._o yes_o and_o much_o more_o rome_n it_o 〈◊〉_d be_v then_o under_o theodorick_n and_o other_o arrian_n dominious_a goth_n and_o those_o ruler_n give_v they_o their_o liberty_n herein_o and_o be_v heretic_n no_o wonder_n if_o the_o bishop_n choose_v to_o continue_v their_o former_a correspondency_n and_o church-order_n to_o strengthen_v themselves_o here_o be_v then_o a_o special_a reason_n why_o rome_n itself_o and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v so_o voluntary_o continue_v 1._o their_o old_a custom_n when_o under_o the_o empire_n have_v so_o settle_v they_o 2_o their_o strength_n and_o safety_n invite_v they_o 3._o it_o be_v their_o voluntary_a act_n 2._o but_o what_o be_v this_o to_o those_o many_o hundred_o year_n before_o when_o the_o empire_n be_v not_o so_o dismember_v though_o even_o till_o after_o gregory_n day_n a_o 6●…_n the_o britain_n obey_v you_o not_o yet_o i_o tell_v you_o that_o when_o pagan_n or_o arrian_n conquer_v any_o part_n of_o the_o empire_n the_o christian_n will_v still_o be_v as_o much_o under_o the_o old_a christian_a power_n as_o they_o can_v which_o make_v the_o major_a armenia_n when_o subdu●…d_a by_o the_o persian_n crave_v the_o roman_n civil_a government_n and_o revolt_v to_o the_o emperor_n and_o kill_v their_o magistrate_n even_o when_o they_o be_v not_o govern_v by_o the_o pope_n at_o all_o §_o 30._o here_o he_o repeat_v what_o he_o have_v frivolous_o say_v before_o of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a with_o a_o odd_a supposition_n as_o if_o india_n be_v in_o america_n and_o then_o betake_v himself_o to_o prove_v out_o of_o the_o father_n the_o roman_a sovereignty_n but_o with_o such_o vain_a citation_n that_o i_o dare_v not_o tire_v the_o reader_n with_o repeat_v and_o particular_o answer_v they_o 1._o they_o be_v at_o large_a answer_v by_o chamier_n whittaker_n and_o many_o other_o protestant_n long_v ago_o and_o many_o of_o they_o or_o most_o by_o myself_o in_o my_o key_n and_o my_o former_a answer_n to_o he_o 2._o because_o it_o be_v needless_a to_o he_o that_o will_v peruse_v the_o author_n and_o history_n themselves_o and_o useless_a to_o he_o that_o will_v not_o 3._o this_o general_a answer_n be_v sufficient_a 1._o part_v of_o they_o be_v the_o word_n of_o spurious_a book_n as_o st._n denis_n a_o interpolate_a book_n of_o cyprian_a some_o new_a find_v chaldaick_n nicene_n canon_n etc._n etc._n 2._o part_v of_o they_o say_v nothing_o of_o the_o pope_n but_o only_o of_o st._n peter_n as_o be_v the_o first_o of_o the_o apostle_n but_o not_o as_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o rest_n 3._o part_n or_o almost_o all_o of_o they_o speak_v only_o of_o a_o imperial_a primacy_n that_o mention_v the_o pope_n 4._o part_v of_o they_o speak_v only_o of_o a_o honorary_a precellencie_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o church_n there_o 5._o some_o speak_v only_a de_fw-fr facto_fw-la that_o at_o that_o time_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v keep_v out_o the_o arrian_n nestorian_a and_o eutychian_a heresy_n more_o than_o the_o ●…ast_n do_v which_o be_v because_o they_o have_v more_o orthodox_n emperor_n and_o therefore_o that_o those_o sect_n that_o then_o differ_v from_o they_o be_v not_o in_o the_o right_n nor_o in_o the_o church_n 6._o some_o be_v only_o the_o commendation_n of_o eastern_a bishop_n persecute_v by_o the_o arrian_n in_o the_o east_n that_o flee_v to_o rome_n for_o shelter_n 7._o as_o high_a word_n be_v often_o give_v by_o doctor_n and_o council_n themselves_o of_o cyril_n and_o other_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n and_o of_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n antioch_n and_o constantinople_n as_o those_o that_o be_v acquaint_v with_o church-writing_n know_v there_o need_v no_o long_a confutation_n of_o his_o citation_n §_o 31._o my_o five_o proof_n be_v that_o the_o eastern_a church_n within_o the_o empire_n be_v never_o subject_n of_o the_o pope_n he_o deny_v this_o antecedent_n i_o prove_v it_o as_o former_o from_o the_o african_n letter_n to_o celestinus_fw-la and_o the_o word_n of_o basil_n &c_n &c_n so_o far_a 1._o because_o the_o pope_n choose_v not_o the_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n antioch_n jerusalem_n or_o constantinople_n nor_o the_o bishop_n under_o they_o 2._o he_o do_v not_o ordain_v they_o nor_o appoint_v any_o vicar_n to_o do_v it_o nor_o do_v they_o hold_v their_o power_n as_o under_o he_o to_o both_o these_o he_o say_v it_o be_v not_o necessary_a etc._n etc._n but_o their_o patriarchal_a power_n be_v from_o he_o answ._n prove_v that_o and_o you_o do_v something_o but_o no_o man_n verse_v in_o church-writing_n can_v believe_v you_o i_o remember_v not_o to_o have_v meet_v with_o any_o learned_a papist_n that_o affirm_v it_o that_o the_o pope_n set_v up_o the_o other_o four_o patriarch_n it_o be_v notorious_a in_o history_n that_o as_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o antioch_n be_v before_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n so_o alexandria_n antioch_n and_o rome_n be_v make_v patriarchates_n together_o and_o no_o one_o of_o they_o make_v the_o rest_n and_o the_o other_o two_o be_v add_v since_o he_o prove_v it_o because_o he_o restore_v and_o depose_v those_o patriarch_n as_o occasion_v require_v answ._n 1._o tell_v this_o to_o those_o that_o never_o read_v such_o write_n prince_n and_o council_n do_v set_v they_o up_o and_o cast_v they_o out_o as_o they_o see_v cause_n it_o be_v tedious_a and_o needless_a to_o any_o but_o the_o ignorant_a to_o recite_v the_o multitude_n of_o instance_n through_o the_o reign_n of_o all_o the_o christian_a emperor_n till_o phocas_n time_n how_o little_a have_v the_o pope_n to_o do_v in_o most_o of_o their_o affair_n 2._o they_o frequent_o set_v up_o and_o depose_v one_o another_o far_o oft_o than_o the_o pope_n do_v any_o do_v that_o prove_v that_o they_o be_v governor_n of_o each_o other_o according_o 3._o council_n then_o judge_v all_o the_o patriarch_n roman_n and_o all_o as_o be_v notorious_a 4._o the_o pope_n sometime_o when_o he_o see_v his_o advantage_n and_o see_v one_o side_n strive_v against_o another_o will_v set_v in_o to_o show_v his_o ambition_n as_o the_o prime_a patriarch_n to_o strengthen_v himself_o by_o such_o as_o need_v he_o and_o usual_o be_v against_o he_o that_o be_v like_a to_o overtop_v he_o as_o neighbour_n prince_n in_o war_n be_v afraid_a of_o the_o strong_a and_o that_o be_v usual_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n 3._o i_o say_v they_o receive_v no_o law_n of_o he_o to_o rule_v by_o he_o reply_v the_o law_n and_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n they_o receive_v and_o those_o be_v confirm_v by_o his_o authority_n answ._n but_o do_v he_o make_v they_o any_o law_n himself_o by_o the_o church_n your_o mean_a council_n and_o those_o make_v law_n for_o he_o therefore_o he_o be_v their_o subject_n he_o have_v but_o a_o voice_n and_o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o a_o speaker_n in_o the_o parliament_n some_o council_n you_o confess_v he_o neither_o preside_v in_o nor_o any_o for_o he_o as_o binnius_n confess_v of_o council_n const._n he_o have_v little_a to_o do_v in_o any_o constantinople_n of_o the_o council_n for_o 500_o or_o 600_o year_n less_o by_o far_o than_o the_o other_o patriarch_n 4._o i_o say_v they_o be_v not_o command_v or_o judge_v by_o he_o he_o reply_v i_o have_v evidence_v they_o be_v command_v and_o judge_v by_o he_o answ._n reader_n the_o solution_n of_o such_o historical_a controversy_n be_v by_o read_v the_o history_n themselves_o read_v thorough_o the_o history_n of_o eusebius_n
you_o have_v say_v a_o word_n to_o prove_v that_o christ_n institute_v the_o universal_a head-ship_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o rather_o do_v you_o not_o overthrow_v it_o yourself_o by_o such_o argue_v see_v 1._o the_o headship_n of_o rome_n have_v not_o be_v ever_o in_o the_o church_n as_o you_o confess_v 2._o it_o never_o be_v in_o the_o universal_a church_n either_o institute_v by_o christ_n or_o receive_v by_o the_o church_n one_o hour_n but_o only_o for_o a_o time_n receive_v by_o a_o corrupt_a oppress_a part_n of_o the_o church_n 3._o the_o pope_n have_v cast_v out_o divers_a thing_n institute_v by_o christ_n for_o continuance_n as_o be_v prove_v i_o tell_v he_o that_o though_o the_o king_n be_v absent_v it_o be_v only_o the_o king_n and_o subject_n that_o be_v essential_a to_o a_o kingdom_n the_o deputy_n be_v but_o a_o officer_n and_o not_o essential_a he_o reply_v it_o be_v so_o indeed_o de_fw-mi facto_fw-la but_o suppose_v as_o i_o do_v that_o a_o vice-king_n be_v by_o full_a authority_n make_v a_o ingredient_n into_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o kingdom_n then_o sure_o he_o must_v be_v essential_a ans._n yes_o by_o very_o good_a reason_n if_o he_o be_v make_v essential_a he_o be_v essential_a and_o now_o i_o understand_v what_o be_v your_o proof_n you_o suppose_v it_o to_o be_v so_o but_o if_o it_o be_v so_o in_o our_o case_n than_o the_o pope_n be_v essential_o so_o the_o church_n constitutive_a head_n that_o whenever_o he_o die_v the_o church_n be_v dead_a unless_o you_o can_v say_v as_o our_o law_n do_v of_o the_o king_n papa_n non_fw-la moritur_fw-la and_o when_o the_o church_n have_v be_v two_o or_o near_o three_o year_n without_o it_o be_v no_o church_n and_o when_o it_o have_v two_o or_o three_o pope_n it_o be_v no_o church_n or_o two_o or_o three_o church_n but_o say_v w._n i._n this_n be_v evident_a in_o our_o present_a subject_n for_o though_o all_o the_o pastor_n in_o christ_n church_n be_v only_o his_o officer_n and_o deputy_n yet_o you_o can_v deny_v such_o officer_n be_v now_o essential_a to_o his_o visible_a church_n ans._n 1._o when_o i_o hear_v the_o word_n evident_a i_o look_v for_o something_o but_o i_o have_v nothing_o but_o universal_a you_o can_v deny_v it_o and_o what_o true_a christian_n ever_o yet_o deny_v it_o but_o i_o do_v not_o remember_v that_o ever_o i_o hear_v it_o dispute_v before_o affirm_v or_o deny_v he_o that_o will_v deny_v it_o will_v say_v that_o as_o all_o the_o mayor_n bailiff_n and_o other_o magistrate_n of_o corporation_n be_v indeed_o essential_a part_n of_o those_o corporation_n and_o these_o corporation_n be_v the_o noble_a integral_a part_n of_o the_o kingdom_n but_o no_o essential_a part_n of_o it_o so_o that_o if_o the_o kingdom_n shall_v be_v resolve_v into_o a_o king_n and_o mere_a common_a subject_n only_o it_o be_v a_o kingdom_n still_o so_o it_o be_v in_o the_o church_n particular_a gather_a church_n be_v the_o noble_a integral_a part_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n but_o not_o essential_a and_o pastor_n be_v essential_a part_n of_o those_o particular_a church_n but_o if_o all_o the_o particular_n and_o pastor_n shall_v cease_v the_o church_n will_v be_v a_o church_n still_o while_o there_o be_v a_o christ_n and_o mere_a christian_n but_o this_o never_o will_v be_v in_o this_o world_n because_o christ_n will_v not_o only_o have_v a_o church_n but_o a_o well-formed_a organise_v church_n those_o that_o have_v rather_o use_v the_o word_n essential_a of_o the_o pastor_n will_v say_v that_o as_o soul_n and_o body_n be_v the_o only_a essential_a part_n of_o a_o man_n and_o yet_o the_o brain_n heart_n and_o liver_n may_v be_v call_v essential_a part_n of_o the_o body_n as_o distinct_a from_o the_o rest_n because_o without_o these_o it_o be_v not_o corpus_fw-la org●…nicum_fw-la and_o so_o not_o humanum_fw-la so_o though_o christ_n be_v the_o only_a soul_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o officer_n may_v be_v essential_a part_n of_o his_o body_n as_o organical_a capable_a of_o such_o a_o soul_n and_o though_o the_o other_o will_v reply_v that_o this_o be_v but_o a_o deceive_a metaphor_n christ_n be_v not_o only_o the_o soul_n but_o the_o head_n and_o no_o organical_a member_n be_v more_o than_o noble_a integral_n because_o if_o a_o intellectual_a separation_n be_v make_v the_o church_n be_v a_o church_n still_o in_o such_o a_o conception_n yet_o all_o this_o be_v but_o a_o controversy_n of_o the_o aptitude_n of_o the_o word_n essential_a in_o that_o case_n we_o be_v agree_v that_o officer_n shall_v be_v in_o the_o church_n to_o the_o end_n and_o yet_o saint_n paul_n 1_o cor._n 12._o call_v they_o but_o eye_n and_o hand_n and_o never_o head_n but_o reserve_v that_o title_n to_o christ_n alone_o yea_o even_o when_o he_o speak_v of_o apostle_n and_o yet_o if_o any_o officer_n be_v essential_a it_o will_v be_v apostle_n who_o be_v call_v foundation_n and_o pillar_n of_o the_o house_n but_o none_o of_o they_o the_o head_n 2._o but_o what_o be_v all_o this_o to_o our_o controversy_n what_o if_o pastor_n be_v essential_a to_o the_o church_n viz._n that_o there_o be_v some_o do_v it_o follow_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v any_o more_o essential_a to_o it_o than_o the_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n or_o antioch_n if_o so_o then_o 1._o before_o peter_n be_v feign_v bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o church_n be_v no_o church_n all_o the_o while_n that_o he_o dwell_v at_o jerusalem_n and_o antioch_n 2._o and_o then_o if_o rome_n be_v burn_v or_o the_o bishop_n of_o it_o cease_v the_o church_n be_v no_o church_n sir_n our_o true_a question_n be_v whether_o a_o traitorous_a usurper_n of_o universal_a sovereignty_n receive_v by_o a_o three_o part_n of_o the_o church_n and_o refuse_v by_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v essential_a to_o the_o church_n not_o as_o whether_o the_o heart_n or_o head_n but_o a_o scab_n or_o cancer_n be_v essential_a to_o the_o body_n after_o some_o vain_a repetition_n pag._n 82._o he_o repeat_v the_o sum_n of_o his_o fraudulent_a argument_n which_o he_o call_v the_o force_n of_o his_o discourse_n viz_o no_o congregation_n of_o christian_n have_v be_v perpetual_o 5._o visible_a but_o that_o which_o acknowledge_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n ergo_fw-la no_o congregation_n of_o christian_n be_v christ_n true_a church_n save_o that_o ans._n i_o will_v therefore_o repeat_v the_o sum_n of_o my_o answer_n viz._n the_o word_n congregation_n be_v ambiguous_a 1._o either_o it_o mean_v a_o company_n meet_v together_o 2._o or_o a_o number_n of_o such_o congregation_n own_v one_o superior_a be_v part_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n 3._o or_o the_o universal_a church_n itself_o according_o i_o answer_v 1._o that_o in_o the_o first_o sense_n a_o congregation_n be_v call_v the_o same_o either_o because_o the_o same_o man_n live_v or_o because_o the_o survivor_n dwell_v in_o the_o same_o place_n or_o because_o they_o be_v of_o the_o same_o profession_n in_o the_o two_o first_o respect_n it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o any_o congregation_n continue_v the_o same_o for_o man_n die_v and_o place_n may_v be_v conquer_v or_o ruin_v in_o the_o three_o sense_n all_o true_a christian_a congregation_n in_o the_o world_n be_v of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o species_n as_o christian_a from_o the_o begin_n to_o this_o day_n ii_o in_o the_o second_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n congregation_n i_o answer_v like_a as_o to_o the_o former_a the_o man_n die_v the_o place_n be_v mutable_a but_o as_o to_o the_o common_a christian_a profession_n they_o be_v the_o same_o that_o they_o have_v be_v but_o as_o to_o the_o extent_n of_o diocese_n neither_o you_o nor_o we_o can_v deny_v but_o that_o they_o have_v alter_v scotus_n petavius_n and_o doctor_n hammond_n who_o hold_v that_o bishop_n without_o presbyter_n be_v first_o settle_v must_v hold_v that_o a_o church_n then_o be_v but_o one_o assembly_n or_o no_o more_o than_o one_o bishop_n can_v speak_v to_o but_o de_fw-fr facto_fw-la all_o agree_v that_o it_o be_v not_o long_o before_o they_o widen_v by_o degree_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n the_o church_n of_o abassia_n armenia_n jerusalem_n alexandria_n etc._n etc._n be_v visible_a and_o have_v be_v from_o their_o beginning_n and_o some_o of_o they_o before_o rome_n be_v the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n smyrna_n thessalonica_n etc._n etc._n be_v and_o have_v be_v such_o and_o some_o church_n be_v visible_a which_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v the_o pope_n sovereignty_n that_o sometime_o do_v viz._n the_o church_n of_o britain_n in_o england_n and_o scotland_n at_o first_o own_v it_o not_o and_o after_o do_v receive_v it_o and_o after_o that_o cast_v it_o off_o again_o but_o it_o be_v visible_a and_o have_v be_v from_o its_o beginning_n the_o church_n of_o denmark_n sweden_n transilvania_n and_o divers_a country_n of_o germany_n be_v not_o